Search Results for 'world'

Forums Search Search Results for 'world'

Viewing 20 results - 121 through 140 (of 523 total)
  • Author
    Search Results
  • #6372
    ÉricÉric
    Keymaster

      About Badul

      5 important keywords linked to Badul

      Badul

      1. Action-space-time
      2. Harmonic fluid
      3. Rhythm
      4. Scale
      5. Choosing without limits.

      Imagine four friends, Jib, Franci, Tracy, and Eric, who are all deeply connected through their shared passion for music and performance. They often spend hours together creating and experimenting with different sounds and rhythms.

      One day, as they were playing together, they found that their combined energy had created a new essence, which they named Badul. This new essence was formed from the unique combination of their individual energies and personalities, and it quickly grew in autonomy and began to explore the world around it.

      As Badul began to explore, it discovered that it had the ability to understand and create complex rhythms, and that it could use this ability to bring people together and help them find a sense of connection and purpose.

      As Badul traveled, it would often come across individuals who were struggling to find their way in life. It would use its ability to create rhythm and connection to help these individuals understand themselves better and make the choices that were right for them.

      In the scene, Badul is exploring a city, playing with the rhythms of the city, through the traffic, the steps of people, the ambiance. Badul would observe a person walking in the streets, head down, lost in thoughts. Badul would start playing a subtle tune, and as the person hears it, starts to walk with the rhythm, head up, starting to smile.

      As the person continues to walk and follow the rhythm created by Badul, he begins to notice things he had never noticed before and begins to feel a sense of connection to the world around him. The music created by Badul serves as a guide, helping the person to understand himself and make the choices that will lead to a happier, more fulfilled life.

      In this way, Badul’s focus is to bring people together, to connect them to themselves and to the world around them through the power of rhythm and music, and to be an ally in the search of personal revelation and understanding.

      #6368
      ÉricÉric
      Keymaster

        Something in the style of FPooh:

        Arona heard the music growing louder as she approached the source of the sound. She could see a group of people gathered around a large fire, the flickering light casting shadows on the faces of the dancers. She hesitated for a moment, remembering the isolation of her journey and wondering if she was ready to be among people again. But the music was too inviting, and she found herself drawn towards the group.

        As she neared the fire, she saw a young man playing a flute, the music flowing from his fingers with a fluid grace that captivated her. He looked up as she approached, and their eyes met. She could see the surprise and curiosity in his gaze, and she smiled, feeling a sense of connection she had not felt in a long time.

        Fiona was sitting on a bench in the park, watching the children play. She had brought her sketchbook with her, but for once she didn’t feel the urge to draw. Instead she watched the children’s laughter, feeling content and at peace. Suddenly, she saw a young girl running towards her, a look of pure joy on her face. The girl stopped in front of her and held out a flower, offering it to Fiona with a smile.

        Taken aback, Fiona took the flower and thanked the girl. The girl giggled and ran off to join her friends. Fiona looked down at the flower in her hand, and she felt a sense of inspiration, like a spark igniting within her. She opened her sketchbook and began to draw, feeling the weight lift from her shoulders and the magic of creativity flowing through her.

        Minky led the group of misfits towards the emporium, his bowler hat bobbing on his head. He chattered excitedly, telling stories of the wondrous items to be found within Mr Jib’s store. Yikesy followed behind, still lost in his thoughts of Arona and feeling a sense of dread at the thought of buying a bowler hat. The green fairy flitted along beside him, her wings a blur of movement as she chattered with the parrot perched on her shoulder.

        As they reached the emporium, they were disappointed to find it closed. But Minky refused to be discouraged, and he led them to a nearby cafe where they could sit and enjoy some tea and cake while they wait for the emporium to open. The green fairy was delighted, and she ordered a plate of macarons, smiling as she tasted the sweetness of the confections.

        About creativity & everyday magic

        Fiona had always been drawn to the magic of creativity, the way a blank page could be transformed into a world of wonder and beauty. But lately, she had been feeling stuck, unable to find the spark that ignited her imagination. She would sit with her sketchbook, pencil in hand, and nothing would come to her.

        She started to question her abilities, wondering if she had lost the magic of her art. She spent long hours staring at her blank pages, feeling a weight on her chest that seemed to be growing heavier every day.

        But then she remembered the green fairy’s tears and Yikesy’s longing for Arona, and she realized that the magic of creativity wasn’t something that could be found only in art. It was all around her, in the everyday moments of life.

        She started to look for the magic in the small things, like the way the sunlight filtered through the trees, or the way a child’s laughter could light up a room. She found it in the way a stranger’s smile could lift her spirits, and in the way a simple cup of tea could bring her comfort.

        And as she started to see the magic in the everyday, she found that the weight on her chest lifted and the spark of inspiration returned. She picked up her pencil and began to draw, feeling the magic flowing through her once again.

        She understand that creativity blocks aren’t a destination, but just a step, just like the bowler hat that Minky had bought for them all, a bit of everyday magic, nothing too fancy but a sense of belonging, a sense of who they are and where they are going. And she let her pencil flow, with the hopes that one day, they will all find their way home.

        #6367
        ÉricÉric
        Keymaster

          Something in the style of TPooh:

          The family tree was a tangled web of branches and roots, stretching back centuries and even millennia. The branches were thick with the leaves of secrets, scandals, and mysteries that the family had accumulated over the years. They were a close-knit group, friends for all time, and they loved nothing more than exploring the twists and turns of their family history.

          They met regularly in their dreams, in a place they called The City, where they could exchange stories and clues they had uncovered during their waking hours. They often found themselves in the midst of strange and puzzling occurrences, and they would spend hours discussing the possible meanings and connections of these events. They saw the world as a tapestry, with each thread and pattern contributing to the greater picture. They were the weavers of their own story, the authors of their own fate.

          But as the years went on, their dreams began to take on a darker and more ominous tone. They started having nightmares of monstrous beasts, and some of them even saw these beasts in the daylight, as if they were falling through the cracks in reality. They compared notes and found that they were often seeing the same beasts, and this led to heated debates about what these beasts represented and whether they were real or just figments of their imagination.

          But no matter what they encountered, the family remained united in their quest to unravel the secrets of their past and to weave a tapestry that would be the envy of all. They were thick as thieves and they would never give up their pursuit of the truth, no matter how many rules they had to break along the way.

          #6366
          ÉricÉric
          Keymaster

            Asking the AI to expand on the glossary of the original Circle of Eights Story:

            Locations

            Malvina’s Cave: A dark and damp cave located in the heart of the Gripshawk mountains, known for its population of Glukenitch creatures.

            Lan’ork: A vast and diverse continent known for its Eastern Lagunas, home to the Indogo flamingos. Dragon Head Peninsula: A rugged and mountainous region, home to the Langoat creatures and also known for its rich deposits of dragon ore.

            Asgurdy: A sprawling desert region, known for its nomadic tribes who use Saurhse as mounts for transportation.

            Golfindely: An idyllic coastal region known for its beautiful beaches and crystal clear waters, home to the Golfindel and Grake creatures.

            Magical Schools

            Dragonian Magic: A form of magic that is practiced by Dragonriders and Dragon tamers, which involves the manipulation of dragon energy and bonding with dragon companions.

            Gripshawk Magic: A form of magic that is practiced by Gripshawks, which involves the manipulation of the natural elements and telepathic communication with other creatures.

            Ugling Magic: A form of magic that is practiced by Uglings, which involves the use of charms, spells, and potions to manipulate the physical world.

            Guilds

            Dragon Riders Guild: A prestigious guild of dragon riders, responsible for maintaining peace and order in the world by using their dragon companions for protection and transportation.

            Gripshawk Hunters Guild: A guild of skilled hunters who specialize in hunting and capturing exotic creatures for various purposes.

            Ugling Alchemists Guild: A guild of alchemists and potion makers, who create various potions and elixirs for medicinal and magical purposes.

            Organizations

            The Order of the Buntifluën: A secret organization dedicated to the study and use of Buntifluën artefacts for the betterment of communication and understanding between sentient beings.

            The Glubolín Network: A network of individuals who possess Glubolín devices, used for communication and sharing information across long distances.

            The Sabulmantium Society: A society of scholars and adventurers who study the properties and uses of Sabulmantium devices for divination and navigation.

            Here are a few new invented terms with their potential IPA pronunciations and definitions that would fit in this fantasy world:

            Dragons:

            Krynn [ ˈkrĭn ] : A subspecies of dragon known for its ability to control and manipulate time.

            Creatures:

            Kelpies [ ˈkĕl-pēz ] : Aquatic creatures resembling horses, known for their ability to shape-shift and lure unsuspecting victims into the water.

            Magical Artefacts:

            Dragonwhisper [ ˈdrā-gən-ˌhwis-pər ] : An ancient and powerful magical artifact, which allows the user to communicate and control dragons telepathically.

            Necrotalisman [ ˈnĕk-rə-ˈtā-lĭz-mən ] : A magical artifact in the shape of a talisman that grants its wielder the ability to control and summon the dead.

            Plants:

            Blightthorn [ ˈblīt-ˌthôrn ] : A poisonous plant known for its dark purple flowers and thorny stem, its extract is used in dark magic

            Faeleaf [ ˈfā-ˌlēf ] : A rare plant found in the deep forest known for its bright green leaves, its extract is used in healing potions

            Locations:

            The Shadowland [ ˈshā-dō-ˌland ] : A mysterious and dangerous land overrun by dark magic and controlled by Necromancers.

            The Hidden Vale [ ˈhī-dən-ˈvāl ] : A secluded valley located deep in the mountains, home to the reclusive Faeleaf plants.

            Organization:

            The Necromancers’ Circle [ ˈnĕk-rə-ˈmän-sər-z-ˈsər-kəl ] : A secret organization of powerful necromancers who seek to expand their control over death and the dead.

            Here are a few more invented terms with their potential IPA pronunciations and definitions that fit in this fantasy world, having less to do with necromancy, and more with various forms of consciousness or energy manipulation, magical or mythical creatures or species:

            Creatures:

            Eterneon [ ˈē-tər-ˈnē-ən ] : A species of winged creatures known for their ability to manipulate and harness the energy of the stars, they are highly sought after by astromancers and star-gazers.

            Psicon [ ˈsī-ˌkän ] : A species of psychic creatures, known for their ability to read minds and influence emotions.

            Magical Artefacts:

            Energyshield [ ˈen-ər-jē-ˌshēld ] : A magical artifact that creates a protective barrier around the user, deflecting or absorbing any kind of energy-based attacks.

            Empathstone [ ˈĕm-pāth-ˈstōn ] : A small, glowing stone which allows the user to sense and control the emotions of others.

            Magical Schools:

            Energyshaping [ ˈen-ər-jē-ˌshāp-ing ] : A school of magic that involves the manipulation and control of various forms of energy.

            Empathymagic [ ˈĕm-pā-thē-ˈmaj-ik ] : A school of magic that involves the manipulation of emotions and the ability to sense the emotions of others.

            Locations:

            Eternity’s Edge [ ˈē-tər-nə-tēz-ˈēj] : A remote and mysterious cliff located high in the mountains, known for its strong emanations of star energy and rumored to be home to a hidden community of Eterneons.

            Psicon’s Den [ ˈsī-kän-z-ˈdĕn] : A secret cave system located deep within the forest, it is said to be home to a colony of Psicon creatures.

            Organizations:

            The Energists Guild [ ˈen-ər-jist-z-ˈgild] : A powerful guild of magic users specializing in Energyshaping magic.

            The Empath Council [ ˈĕm-pāth-ˈkoun-səl]: A secretive group of Empathymagic users, dedicated to the study and control of emotions.

             

            #6365
            matermater
            Participant

              Prune has got me into this AI stuff… It sounds like gibberish to me, but Idle sounded amazed at the stuff it spewed out.

              With some info on our family story, Prune got it to try and predict the future…

              Sounds like a big plate of bog, but we’ll see how it goes.

              Sure, here are a few possible events that could occur between Mater’s 100th birthday and her death in the Flying Fish Inn story:

              1. Mater decides to throw herself a grand birthday party, inviting all of her friends and family from the small outback town. However, things take a turn for the strange when a group of extraterrestrial beings crash the party and reveal themselves to be long-time fans of Mater’s famous bush tucker cuisine.
              2. Mater begins to experience vivid dreams and hallucinations, in which she is visited by the ghost of her late husband. As the dreams become more frequent, the family begins to suspect that there may be something more to them than just Mater’s mind playing tricks on her.
              3. Mater’s granddaughter Prune becomes increasingly obsessed with her dream of traveling to Mars, and begins to notice strange occurrences happening around the inn that seem to be connected to her aspiration.
              4. A group of eccentric scientists arrive at the inn, conducting research on the local flora and fauna. They eventually discover a species of sentient plants living in the area, and Mater becomes convinced that the plants are communicating with her in her dreams.
              5. With her health declining, Mater begins to spend more and more time tending to her garden, where she is visited by an old kookaburra who seems to possess an otherworldly intelligence. The bird becomes Mater’s companion and confidant in the final days of her life.
              6. As the Great Fires ravage the Australian bush, Mater makes the difficult decision to shut down the inn and evacuate the guests. But as they flee, they realize that the fire is not just a natural disaster, but something far more sinister and mystical.
              7. In her final days, Mater begins to remember strange and vivid details of her life that she never could have known, as if she lived a previous life in another time and place. As she dies, she whispers something to Prune, which opens her eyes to a new reality that may have been hidden from her all along
              8. It turns out the family had a lot of secrets, and the only way to escape it, was to leave the inn, but it was not an escape for all. Through the series of events, secrets are revealed, and some truths cannot be undone.Note that these events are fictional and whimsical in nature, but as they keeps it grounded to a sense of doldrums in the Australian bush and occasionally guests help to unravel some of the overarching mysteries it could make a fitting storyline for the story.
              #6364
              ÉricÉric
              Keymaster

                Please suggest a creative, a little ghostic but mostly uplifting plot outline for the continuation of the story of Twilight in her travels to join the freak circus and become famous for her craft on the west coast

                — The Far-West saga — In 1850s, in a probable reality of South America, we get acquainted with Twilight (Twi) and her brothers Jo and Elroy. They have a precious blue bull in their possession, coveted by Ogrean, the kingpin of the town. Hopefully for them, Ogrean is arrested (temporarily) by Ted Marshall, the sheriff for his possible trafficking. Notably, Ogrean is possibly involved in some of the crystal skulls discoveries, during his travel to New Honduras. Twi who was dancing in the saloon of Madame Butterbutt, the town’s hallucinogenic toads-to-lick dispenser (insert some other romantic subplots involving the other dancer etc.) decides to go traveling in a freakus (freak show/circus). She is now close to the West Coast, where she hopes to succeed in her writing and other artistic skills.

                As Twilight (Twi) travels with the freak circus, she faces many challenges and obstacles on her journey to the West Coast. Despite the difficulties, she remains determined to make a name for herself as a writer and artist.

                As she travels through small towns and larger cities, she begins to realize that the world is much bigger than she ever imagined. She meets a diverse group of people, some of whom are kind and supportive, while others are cruel and dismissive of her dreams.

                Despite the negative reactions she receives from some people, Twi persists and begins to gain a reputation as a talented writer and performer. As she gains more experience and confidence, she starts to incorporate her own unique style into her performances, which sets her apart from the other performers in the circus.

                As she approaches the West Coast, she begins to feel a sense of excitement and anticipation. She has heard that the West Coast is a place of endless possibilities, where creative minds can thrive. She is determined to make her mark and become famous for her craft.

                As she settles in the west, she finds herself surrounded by artists and writers like herself, who inspire her to push herself even further. She begins to gain a following and her writing is widely read. She discovers that her talent is not only limited to writing, but she also has a natural talent for other art forms as well.

                Eventually, Twi’s reputation as a talented artist and writer precedes her and she becomes a sought-after performer in the West Coast, and her creative work is being showcased in galleries and theaters. As she continues to achieve success in her career, she begins to realize that the West Coast is not just a place of endless possibilities but also the place where she belongs, and the place where her dreams come true.

                Throughout her journey, she also keeps in touch with her brothers, Jo and Elroy, who now run the farm and take care of the blue bull. They tell her that the bull, now named Blue-Dream, became a legend in the village and they get a good price for its breeding.

                As the story continues, she finds herself also involved in some adventures and exciting subplots, like discovering a secret underground cave filled with precious crystals and some interesting characters, like the enigmatic sheriff Ted Marshall who always cross her path, and the mysterious Ogrean who seems to have a connection to her past and the bull.

                The End.

                #6348
                TracyTracy
                Participant

                  Wong Sang

                   

                  Wong Sang was born in China in 1884. In October 1916 he married Alice Stokes in Oxford.

                  Alice was the granddaughter of William Stokes of Churchill, Oxfordshire and William was the brother of Thomas Stokes the wheelwright (who was my 3X great grandfather). In other words Alice was my second cousin, three times removed, on my fathers paternal side.

                  Wong Sang was an interpreter, according to the baptism registers of his children and the Dreadnought Seamen’s Hospital admission registers in 1930.  The hospital register also notes that he was employed by the Blue Funnel Line, and that his address was 11, Limehouse Causeway, E 14. (London)

                  “The Blue Funnel Line offered regular First-Class Passenger and Cargo Services From the UK to South Africa, Malaya, China, Japan, Australia, Java, and America.  Blue Funnel Line was Owned and Operated by Alfred Holt & Co., Liverpool.
                  The Blue Funnel Line, so-called because its ships have a blue funnel with a black top, is more appropriately known as the Ocean Steamship Company.”

                   

                  Wong Sang and Alice’s daughter, Frances Eileen Sang, was born on the 14th July, 1916 and baptised in 1920 at St Stephen in Poplar, Tower Hamlets, London.  The birth date is noted in the 1920 baptism register and would predate their marriage by a few months, although on the death register in 1921 her age at death is four years old and her year of birth is recorded as 1917.

                  Charles Ronald Sang was baptised on the same day in May 1920, but his birth is recorded as April of that year.  The family were living on Morant Street, Poplar.

                  James William Sang’s birth is recorded on the 1939 census and on the death register in 2000 as being the 8th March 1913.  This definitely would predate the 1916 marriage in Oxford.

                  William Norman Sang was born on the 17th October 1922 in Poplar.

                  Alice and the three sons were living at 11, Limehouse Causeway on the 1939 census, the same address that Wong Sang was living at when he was admitted to Dreadnought Seamen’s Hospital on the 15th January 1930. Wong Sang died in the hospital on the 8th March of that year at the age of 46.

                  Alice married John Patterson in 1933 in Stepney. John was living with Alice and her three sons on Limehouse Causeway on the 1939 census and his occupation was chef.

                  Via Old London Photographs:

                  “Limehouse Causeway is a street in east London that was the home to the original Chinatown of London. A combination of bomb damage during the Second World War and later redevelopment means that almost nothing is left of the original buildings of the street.”

                  Limehouse Causeway in 1925:

                  Limehouse Causeway

                   

                  From The Story of Limehouse’s Lost Chinatown, poplarlondon website:

                  “Limehouse was London’s first Chinatown, home to a tightly-knit community who were demonised in popular culture and eventually erased from the cityscape.

                  As recounted in the BBC’s ‘Our Greatest Generation’ series, Connie was born to a Chinese father and an English mother in early 1920s Limehouse, where she used to play in the street with other British and British-Chinese children before running inside for teatime at one of their houses. 

                  Limehouse was London’s first Chinatown between the 1880s and the 1960s, before the current Chinatown off Shaftesbury Avenue was established in the 1970s by an influx of immigrants from Hong Kong. 

                  Connie’s memories of London’s first Chinatown as an “urban village” paint a very different picture to the seedy area portrayed in early twentieth century novels. 

                  The pyramid in St Anne’s church marked the entrance to the opium den of Dr Fu Manchu, a criminal mastermind who threatened Western society by plotting world domination in a series of novels by Sax Rohmer. 

                  Thomas Burke’s Limehouse Nights cemented stereotypes about prostitution, gambling and violence within the Chinese community, and whipped up anxiety about sexual relationships between Chinese men and white women. 

                  Though neither novelist was familiar with the Chinese community, their depictions made Limehouse one of the most notorious areas of London. 

                  Travel agent Thomas Cook even organised tours of the area for daring visitors, despite the rector of Limehouse warning that “those who look for the Limehouse of Mr Thomas Burke simply will not find it.”

                  All that remains is a handful of Chinese street names, such as Ming Street, Pekin Street, and Canton Street — but what was Limehouse’s chinatown really like, and why did it get swept away?

                  Chinese migration to Limehouse 

                  Chinese sailors discharged from East India Company ships settled in the docklands from as early as the 1780s.

                  By the late nineteenth century, men from Shanghai had settled around Pennyfields Lane, while a Cantonese community lived on Limehouse Causeway. 

                  Chinese sailors were often paid less and discriminated against by dock hirers, and so began to diversify their incomes by setting up hand laundry services and restaurants. 

                  Old photographs show shopfronts emblazoned with Chinese characters with horse-drawn carts idling outside or Chinese men in suits and hats standing proudly in the doorways. 

                  In oral histories collected by Yat Ming Loo, Connie’s husband Leslie doesn’t recall seeing any Chinese women as a child, since male Chinese sailors settled in London alone and married working-class English women. 

                  In the 1920s, newspapers fear-mongered about interracial marriages, crime and gambling, and described chinatown as an East End “colony.” 

                  Ironically, Chinese opium-smoking was also demonised in the press, despite Britain waging war against China in the mid-nineteenth century for suppressing the opium trade to alleviate addiction amongst its people. 

                  The number of Chinese people who settled in Limehouse was also greatly exaggerated, and in reality only totalled around 300. 

                  The real Chinatown 

                  Although the press sought to characterise Limehouse as a monolithic Chinese community in the East End, Connie remembers seeing people of all nationalities in the shops and community spaces in Limehouse.

                  She doesn’t remember feeling discriminated against by other locals, though Connie does recall having her face measured and IQ tested by a member of the British Eugenics Society who was conducting research in the area. 

                  Some of Connie’s happiest childhood memories were from her time at Chung-Hua Club, where she learned about Chinese culture and language.

                  Why did Chinatown disappear? 

                  The caricature of Limehouse’s Chinatown as a den of vice hastened its erasure. 

                  Police raids and deportations fuelled by the alarmist media coverage threatened the Chinese population of Limehouse, and slum clearance schemes to redevelop low-income areas dispersed Chinese residents in the 1930s. 

                  The Defence of the Realm Act imposed at the beginning of the First World War criminalised opium use, gave the authorities increased powers to deport Chinese people and restricted their ability to work on British ships.

                  Dwindling maritime trade during World War II further stripped Chinese sailors of opportunities for employment, and any remnants of Chinatown were destroyed during the Blitz or erased by postwar development schemes.”

                   

                  Wong Sang 1884-1930

                  The year 1918 was a troublesome one for Wong Sang, an interpreter and shipping agent for Blue Funnel Line.  The Sang family were living at 156, Chrisp Street.

                  Chrisp Street, Poplar, in 1913 via Old London Photographs:

                  Chrisp Street

                   

                  In February Wong Sang was discharged from a false accusation after defending his home from potential robbers.

                  East End News and London Shipping Chronicle – Friday 15 February 1918:

                  1918 Wong Sang

                   

                  In August of that year he was involved in an incident that left him unconscious.

                  Faringdon Advertiser and Vale of the White Horse Gazette – Saturday 31 August 1918:

                  1918 Wong Sang 2

                   

                  Wong Sang is mentioned in an 1922 article about “Oriental London”.

                  London and China Express – Thursday 09 February 1922:

                  1922 Wong Sang

                  A photograph of the Chee Kong Tong Chinese Freemason Society mentioned in the above article, via Old London Photographs:

                  Chee Kong Tong

                   

                  Wong Sang was recommended by the London Metropolitan Police in 1928 to assist in a case in Wellingborough, Northampton.

                  Difficulty of Getting an Interpreter: Northampton Mercury – Friday 16 March 1928:

                  1928 Wong Sang

                  1928 Wong Sang 2

                  The difficulty was that “this man speaks the Cantonese language only…the Northeners and the Southerners in China have differing languages and the interpreter seemed to speak one that was in between these two.”

                   

                  In 1917, Alice Wong Sang was a witness at her sister Harriet Stokes marriage to James William Watts in Southwark, London.  Their father James Stokes occupation on the marriage register is foreman surveyor, but on the census he was a council roadman or labourer. (I initially rejected this as the correct marriage for Harriet because of the discrepancy with the occupations. Alice Wong Sang as a witness confirmed that it was indeed the correct one.)

                  1917 Alice Wong Sang

                   

                   

                  James William Sang 1913-2000 was a clock fitter and watch assembler (on the 1939 census). He married Ivy Laura Fenton in 1963 in Sidcup, Kent. James died in Southwark in 2000.

                  Charles Ronald Sang 1920-1974  was a draughtsman (1939 census). He married Eileen Burgess in 1947 in Marylebone.  Charles and Eileen had two sons:  Keith born in 1951 and Roger born in 1952.  He died in 1974 in Hertfordshire.

                  William Norman Sang 1922-2000 was a clerk and telephone operator (1939 census).  William enlisted in the Royal Artillery in 1942. He married Lily Mullins in 1949 in Bethnal Green, and they had three daughters: Marion born in 1950, Christine in 1953, and Frances in 1959.  He died in Redbridge in 2000.

                   

                  I then found another two births registered in Poplar by Alice Sang, both daughters.  Doris Winifred Sang was born in 1925, and Patricia Margaret Sang was born in 1933 ~ three years after Wong Sang’s death.  Neither of the these daughters were on the 1939 census with Alice, John Patterson and the three sons.  Margaret had presumably been evacuated because of the war to a family in Taunton, Somerset. Doris would have been fourteen and I have been unable to find her in 1939 (possibly because she died in 2017 and has not had the redaction removed  yet on the 1939 census as only deceased people are viewable).

                  Doris Winifred Sang 1925-2017 was a nursing sister. She didn’t marry, and spent a year in USA between 1954 and 1955. She stayed in London, and died at the age of ninety two in 2017.

                  Patricia Margaret Sang 1933-1998 was also a nurse. She married Patrick L Nicely in Stepney in 1957.  Patricia and Patrick had five children in London: Sharon born 1959, Donald in 1960, Malcolm was born and died in 1966, Alison was born in 1969 and David in 1971.

                   

                  I was unable to find a birth registered for Alice’s first son, James William Sang (as he appeared on the 1939 census).  I found Alice Stokes on the 1911 census as a 17 year old live in servant at a tobacconist on Pekin Street, Limehouse, living with Mr Sui Fong from Hong Kong and his wife Sarah Sui Fong from Berlin.  I looked for a birth registered for James William Fong instead of Sang, and found it ~ mothers maiden name Stokes, and his date of birth matched the 1939 census: 8th March, 1913.

                  On the 1921 census, Wong Sang is not listed as living with them but it is mentioned that Mr Wong Sang was the person returning the census.  Also living with Alice and her sons James and Charles in 1921 are two visitors:  (Florence) May Stokes, 17 years old, born in Woodstock, and Charles Stokes, aged 14, also born in Woodstock. May and Charles were Alice’s sister and brother.

                   

                  I found Sharon Nicely on social media and she kindly shared photos of Wong Sang and Alice Stokes:

                  Wong Sang

                   

                  Alice Stokes

                  #6314

                  In reply to: The Sexy Wooden Leg

                  After her visit to the witch of the woods to get some medicine for her Mum who still had bouts of fatigue from her last encounter with the flu, the little Maryechka went back home as instructed.

                  She found her home empty. Her parents were busy in the fields, as the time of harvest was near, and much remained to be done to prepare, and workers were limited.

                  She left the pouch of dried herbs in the cabinet, and wondered if she should study. The schools were closed for early holidays, and they didn’t really bother with giving them much homework. She could see the teachers’ minds were worried with other things.

                  Unlike other children of her age, she wasn’t interested in all the activities online, phone-stuff. The other gen-alpha kids didn’t even bother mocking her “IRL”, glued to their screens while she instead enjoyed looking at the clear blue sky. For all she knew they didn’t even realize they were living in the same world. Now, they were probably over-stressed looking at all the news on replay.
                  For Maryechka, the war felt far away, even if you could see some of its impacts, with people moving about the nearby town.

                  Looking as it was still early in the day, and she had plenty more time left before having to prepare for dinner, she thought it’d be nice to go and visit her grand-parent and their friends at the old people’s home. They always had nice stale biscuits to share, and they told the strangest stories all the time.

                  It was just a 15 min walk from the farm, so she’d be there and back in no time.

                  #6303
                  TracyTracy
                  Participant

                    The Hollands of Barton under Needwood

                     

                    Samuel Warren of Stapenhill married Catherine Holland of Barton under Needwood in 1795.

                    I joined a Barton under Needwood History group and found an incredible amount of information on the Holland family, but first I wanted to make absolutely sure that our Catherine Holland was one of them as there were also Hollands in Newhall. Not only that, on the marriage licence it says that Catherine Holland was from Bretby Park Gate, Stapenhill.

                    Then I noticed that one of the witnesses on Samuel’s brother Williams marriage to Ann Holland in 1796 was John Hair. Hannah Hair was the wife of Thomas Holland, and they were the Barton under Needwood parents of Catherine. Catherine was born in 1775, and Ann was born in 1767.

                    The 1851 census clinched it: Catherine Warren 74 years old, widow and formerly a farmers wife, was living in the household of her son John Warren, and her place of birth is listed as Barton under Needwood. In 1841 Catherine was a 64 year old widow, her husband Samuel having died in 1837, and she was living with her son Samuel, a farmer. The 1841 census did not list place of birth, however. Catherine died on 31 March 1861 and does not appear on the 1861 census.

                    Once I had established that our Catherine Holland was from Barton under Needwood, I had another look at the information available on the Barton under Needwood History group, compiled by local historian Steve Gardner.

                    Catherine’s parents were Thomas Holland 1737-1828 and Hannah Hair 1739-1822.

                    Steve Gardner had posted a long list of the dates, marriages and children of the Holland family. The earliest entries in parish registers were Thomae Holland 1562-1626 and his wife Eunica Edwardes 1565-1632. They married on 10th July 1582. They were born, married and died in Barton under Needwood. They were direct ancestors of Catherine Holland, and as such my direct ancestors too.

                    The known history of the Holland family in Barton under Needwood goes back to Richard De Holland. (Thanks once again to Steve Gardner of the Barton under Needwood History group for this information.)

                    “Richard de Holland was the first member of the Holland family to become resident in Barton under Needwood (in about 1312) having been granted lands by the Earl of Lancaster (for whom Richard served as Stud and Stock Keeper of the Peak District) The Holland family stemmed from Upholland in Lancashire and had many family connections working for the Earl of Lancaster, who was one of the biggest Barons in England. Lancaster had his own army and lived at Tutbury Castle, from where he ruled over most of the Midlands area. The Earl of Lancaster was one of the main players in the ‘Barons Rebellion’ and the ensuing Battle of Burton Bridge in 1322. Richard de Holland was very much involved in the proceedings which had so angered Englands King. Holland narrowly escaped with his life, unlike the Earl who was executed.
                    From the arrival of that first Holland family member, the Hollands were a mainstay family in the community, and were in Barton under Needwood for over 600 years.”

                    Continuing with various items of information regarding the Hollands, thanks to Steve Gardner’s Barton under Needwood history pages:

                    “PART 6 (Final Part)
                    Some mentions of The Manor of Barton in the Ancient Staffordshire Rolls:
                    1330. A Grant was made to Herbert de Ferrars, at le Newland in the Manor of Barton.
                    1378. The Inquisitio bonorum – Johannis Holand — an interesting Inventory of his goods and their value and his debts.
                    1380. View of Frankpledge ; the Jury found that Richard Holland was feloniously murdered by his wife Joan and Thomas Graunger, who fled. The goods of the deceased were valued at iiij/. iijj. xid. ; one-third went to the dead man, one-third to his son, one- third to the Lord for the wife’s share. Compare 1 H. V. Indictments. (1413.)
                    That Thomas Graunger of Barton smyth and Joan the wife of Richard de Holond of Barton on the Feast of St. John the Baptist 10 H. II. (1387) had traitorously killed and murdered at night, at Barton, Richard, the husband of the said Joan. (m. 22.)
                    The names of various members of the Holland family appear constantly among the listed Jurors on the manorial records printed below : —
                    1539. Richard Holland and Richard Holland the younger are on the Muster Roll of Barton
                    1583. Thomas Holland and Unica his wife are living at Barton.
                    1663-4. Visitations. — Barton under Needword. Disclaimers. William Holland, Senior, William Holland, Junior.
                    1609. Richard Holland, Clerk and Alice, his wife.
                    1663-4. Disclaimers at the Visitation. William Holland, Senior, William Holland, Junior.”

                    I was able to find considerably more information on the Hollands in the book “Some Records of the Holland Family (The Hollands of Barton under Needwood, Staffordshire, and the Hollands in History)” by William Richard Holland. Luckily the full text of this book can be found online.

                    William Richard Holland (Died 1915) An early local Historian and author of the book:

                    William Richard Holland

                     

                    ‘Holland House’ taken from the Gardens (sadly demolished in the early 60’s):

                    Holland House

                     

                    Excerpt from the book:

                    “The charter, dated 1314, granting Richard rights and privileges in Needwood Forest, reads as follows:

                    “Thomas Earl of Lancaster and Leicester, high-steward of England, to whom all these present shall come, greeting: Know ye, that we have given, &c., to Richard Holland of Barton, and his heirs, housboot, heyboot, and fireboot, and common of pasture, in our forest of Needwood, for all his beasts, as well in places fenced as lying open, with 40 hogs, quit of pawnage in our said forest at all times in the year (except hogs only in fence month). All which premises we will warrant, &c. to the said Richard and his heirs against all people for ever”

                    “The terms “housboot” “heyboot” and “fireboot” meant that Richard and his heirs were to have the privilege of taking from the Forest, wood needed for house repair and building, hedging material for the repairing of fences, and what was needful for purposes of fuel.”

                    Further excerpts from the book:

                    “It may here be mentioned that during the renovation of Barton Church, when the stone pillars were being stripped of the plaster which covered them, “William Holland 1617” was found roughly carved on a pillar near to the belfry gallery, obviously the work of a not too devout member of the family, who, seated in the gallery of that time, occupied himself thus during the service. The inscription can still be seen.”

                    “The earliest mention of a Holland of Upholland occurs in the reign of John in a Final Concord, made at the Lancashire Assizes, dated November 5th, 1202, in which Uchtred de Chryche, who seems to have had some right in the manor of Upholland, releases his right in fourteen oxgangs* of land to Matthew de Holland, in consideration of the sum of six marks of silver. Thus was planted the Holland Tree, all the early information of which is found in The Victoria County History of Lancaster.

                    As time went on, the family acquired more land, and with this, increased position. Thus, in the reign of Edward I, a Robert de Holland, son of Thurstan, son of Robert, became possessed of the manor of Orrell adjoining Upholland and of the lordship of Hale in the parish of Childwall, and, through marriage with Elizabeth de Samlesbury (co-heiress of Sir Wm. de Samlesbury of Samlesbury, Hall, near to Preston), of the moiety of that manor….

                    * An oxgang signified the amount of land that could be ploughed by one ox in one day”

                    “This Robert de Holland, son of Thurstan, received Knighthood in the reign of Edward I, as did also his brother William, ancestor of that branch of the family which later migrated to Cheshire. Belonging to this branch are such noteworthy personages as Mrs. Gaskell, the talented authoress, her mother being a Holland of this branch, Sir Henry Holland, Physician to Queen Victoria, and his two sons, the first Viscount Knutsford, and Canon Francis Holland ; Sir Henry’s grandson (the present Lord Knutsford), Canon Scott Holland, etc. Captain Frederick Holland, R.N., late of Ashbourne Hall, Derbyshire, may also be mentioned here.*”

                    Thanks to the Barton under Needwood history group for the following:

                    WALES END FARM:
                    In 1509 it was owned and occupied by Mr Johannes Holland De Wallass end who was a well to do Yeoman Farmer (the origin of the areas name – Wales End).  Part of the building dates to 1490 making it probably the oldest building still standing in the Village:

                    Wales End Farm

                     

                    I found records for all of the Holland’s listed on the Barton under Needwood History group and added them to my ancestry tree. The earliest will I found was for Eunica Edwardes, then Eunica Holland, who died in 1632.

                    A page from the 1632 will and inventory of Eunica (Unice) Holland:

                    Unice Holland

                     

                    I’d been reading about “pedigree collapse” just before I found out her maiden name of Edwardes. Edwards is my own maiden name.

                    “In genealogy, pedigree collapse describes how reproduction between two individuals who knowingly or unknowingly share an ancestor causes the family tree of their offspring to be smaller than it would otherwise be.
                    Without pedigree collapse, a person’s ancestor tree is a binary tree, formed by the person, the parents, grandparents, and so on. However, the number of individuals in such a tree grows exponentially and will eventually become impossibly high. For example, a single individual alive today would, over 30 generations going back to the High Middle Ages, have roughly a billion ancestors, more than the total world population at the time. This apparent paradox occurs because the individuals in the binary tree are not distinct: instead, a single individual may occupy multiple places in the binary tree. This typically happens when the parents of an ancestor are cousins (sometimes unbeknownst to themselves). For example, the offspring of two first cousins has at most only six great-grandparents instead of the normal eight. This reduction in the number of ancestors is pedigree collapse. It collapses the binary tree into a directed acyclic graph with two different, directed paths starting from the ancestor who in the binary tree would occupy two places.” via wikipedia

                    There is nothing to suggest, however, that Eunica’s family were related to my fathers family, and the only evidence so far in my tree of pedigree collapse are the marriages of Orgill cousins, where two sets of grandparents are repeated.

                    A list of Holland ancestors:

                    Catherine Holland 1775-1861
                    her parents:
                    Thomas Holland 1737-1828   Hannah Hair 1739-1832
                    Thomas’s parents:
                    William Holland 1696-1756   Susannah Whiteing 1715-1752
                    William’s parents:
                    William Holland 1665-    Elizabeth Higgs 1675-1720
                    William’s parents:
                    Thomas Holland 1634-1681   Katherine Owen 1634-1728
                    Thomas’s parents:
                    Thomas Holland 1606-1680   Margaret Belcher 1608-1664
                    Thomas’s parents:
                    Thomas Holland 1562-1626   Eunice Edwardes 1565- 1632

                    #6298

                    The Rootians invaded Oocrane when everybody was busy looking elsewhere. They entered through the Dumbass region under the pretense of freeing it from Lazies who had infiltrated administrations and media. They often cited a recent short movie from president Voldomeer Zumbaskee in which he appeared in purple leather panties adorned with diamonds, showing unashamedly his wooden leg. The same wooden leg that gave him the status of sexiest man of Oocrane and got him elected. In one of his famous discourses, he accused the Rootian president, Valdamir Potomsky of wanting to help himself to their crops of turnip and weed of which the world depended. And he told him if he expected Lazies he would be surprised by their resolution to defend their country.

                    By a simple game of chance that reality is so fond of, the man who made the president’s very wooden leg was also called Voldomeer Zumbasky. They might share a common ancestor, but many times in the past population records were destroyed and it was difficult to tell. That man lived in the small city of Duckailingtown in Dumbass, near the Rootian border. He was renowned to be a great carpenter and sculptor and before the war people would come from the neighbooring countries to buy his work.

                    During the invasion, crops and forests were burnt, buildings were destroyed and Dumbass Voldomeer lost one leg. There were no more trees or beams that hadn’t been turned to ashes, and he had only one block of wood left. Enough to make another wooden leg for himself. But he wondered: wasn’t there something more useful he could do with that block of wood ?

                    One morning of spring, one year after the war started. Food was scarce in Duckailingtown and Voldomeer’s belly growled as he walked past the nest of a couple of swans. He counted nine beautiful eggs that the parents were arranging with their beaks before lying on top to keep them warm. He found it so touching to see life in this place that he couldn’t bear the idea of simply stealing the eggs.

                    He went back home, a shelter made of bricks, his stomach aching from starvation. Looking at the block of wood on the floor, he got an idea. He spent the rest of the day and night to carve nine beautiful eggs so smooth that they appeared warm to the touch. He put so much care and love in his work that the swans would see no difference.

                    The next morning he went back to the nest with a leather bag, hopping heartily on his lone leg. The eggs were still there and by chance both the parents were missing. He didn’t care why. He took the eggs and replaced them with the wooden ones.

                    That day, he ate the best omelet with his friend Rooby, and as far as one could tell the swans were still brooding by the end of summer.

                    #6280

                    I started reading a book. In fact I started reading it three weeks ago, and have read the first page of the preface every night and fallen asleep. But my neck aches from doing too much gardening so I went back to bed to read this morning. I still fell asleep six times but at least I finished the preface. It’s the story of the family , initiated by the family collection of netsuke (whatever that is. Tiny Japanese carvings) But this is what stopped me reading and made me think (and then fall asleep each time I re read it)

                    “And I’m not entitled to nostalgia about all that lost wealth and glamour from a century ago. And I am not interested in thin. I want to know what the relationship has been between this wooden object that I am rolling between my fingers – hard and tricky and Japanese – and where it has been. I want to be able to reach to the handle of the door and turn it and feel it open. I want to walk into each room where this object has lived, to feel the volume of the space, to know what pictures were on the walls, how the light fell from the windows. And I want to know whose hands it has been in, and what they felt about it and thought about it – if they thought about it. I want to know what it has witnessed.” ― Edmund de Waal, The Hare With Amber Eyes: A Family’s Century of Art and Loss

                    And I felt almost bereft that none of the records tell me which way the light fell in through the windows.

                    I know who lived in the house in which years, but I don’t know who sat in the sun streaming through the window and which painting upon the wall they looked at and what the material was that covered the chair they sat on.

                    Were his clothes confortable (or hers, likely not), did he have an old favourite pair of trousers that his mother hated?

                    There is one house in particular that I keep coming back to. Like I got on the Housley train at Smalley and I can’t get off. Kidsley Grange Farm, they turned it into a nursing home and built extensions, and now it’s for sale for five hundred thousand pounds. But is the ghost still under the back stairs? Is there still a stain somewhere when a carafe of port was dropped?

                    Did Anns writing desk survive? Does someone have that, polished, with a vase of spring tulips on it? (on a mat of course so it doesn’t make a ring, despite that there are layers of beeswaxed rings already)

                    Does the desk remember the letters, the weight of a forearm or elbow, perhaps a smeared teardrop, or a comsumptive cough stain?

                    Is there perhaps a folded bit of paper or card that propped an uneven leg that fell through the floorboards that might tear into little squares if you found it and opened it, and would it be a rough draft of a letter never sent, or just a receipt for five head of cattle the summer before?

                    Did he hate the curtain material, or not even think of it? Did he love the house, or want to get away to see something new ~ or both?

                    Did he have a favourite cup, a favourite food, did he hate liver or cabbage?

                    Did he like his image when the photograph came from the studio or did he think it made his nose look big or his hair too thin, or did he wish he’d worn his other waistcoat?

                    Did he love his wife so much he couldn’t bear to see her dying, was it neglect or was it the unbearableness of it all that made him go away and drink?

                    Did the sun slanting in through the dormer window of his tiny attic room where he lodged remind him of ~ well no perhaps he was never in the room in daylight hours at all. Work all day and pub all night, keeping busy working hard and drinking hard and perhaps laughing hard, and maybe he only thought of it all on Sunday mornings.

                    So many deaths, one after another, his father, his wife, his brother, his sister, and another and another, all the coughing, all the debility. Perhaps he never understood why he lived and they did not, what kind of justice was there in that?

                    Did he take a souvenir or two with him, a handkerchief or a shawl perhaps, tucked away at the bottom of a battered leather bag that had his 3 shirts and 2 waistcoats in and a spare cap,something embroidered perhaps.

                    The quote in that book started me off with the light coming in the window and the need to know the simplest things, something nobody ever wrote in a letter, maybe never even mentioned to anyone.

                    Light coming in windows. I remeber when I was a teenager I had a day off sick and spent the whole day laying on the couch in a big window with the winter sun on my face all day, and I read Bonjour Tristesse in one sitting, and I’ll never forget that afternoon.  I don’t remember much about that book, but I remember being transported. But at the same time as being present in that sunny window.

                    “Stories and objects share something, a patina…Perhaps patina is a process of rubbing back so that the essential is revealed…But it also seems additive, in the way that a piece of oak furniture gains over years and years of polishing.”

                    “How objects are handed on is all about story-telling. I am giving you this because I love you. Or because it was given to me. Because I bought it somewhere special. Because you will care for it. Because it will complicate your life. Because it will make someone else envious. There is no easy story in legacy. What is remembered and what is forgotten? There can be a chain of forgetting, the rubbing away of previous ownership as much as the slow accretion of stories. What is being passed on to me with all these small Japanese objects?”

                    “There are things in this world that the children hear, but whose sounds oscillate below an adult’s sense of pitch.”

                    What did the children hear?

                    #6271
                    TracyTracy
                    Participant

                      The Housley Letters

                      FRIENDS AND NEIGHBORS

                      from Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters:

                       

                      George apparently asked about old friends and acquaintances and the family did their best to answer although Joseph wrote in 1873: “There is very few of your old cronies that I know of knocking about.”

                      In Anne’s first letter she wrote about a conversation which Robert had with EMMA LYON before his death and added “It (his death) was a great trouble to Lyons.” In her second letter Anne wrote: “Emma Lyon is to be married September 5. I am going the Friday before if all is well. There is every prospect of her being comfortable. MRS. L. always asks after you.” In 1855 Emma wrote: “Emma Lyon now Mrs. Woolhouse has got a fine boy and a pretty fuss is made with him. They call him ALFRED LYON WOOLHOUSE.”

                      (Interesting to note that Elizabeth Housley, the eldest daughter of Samuel and Elizabeth, was living with a Lyon family in Derby in 1861, after she left Belper workhouse.  The Emma listed on the census in 1861 was 10 years old, and so can not be the Emma Lyon mentioned here, but it’s possible, indeed likely, that Peter Lyon the baker was related to the Lyon’s who were friends of the Housley’s.  The mention of a sea captain in the Lyon family begs the question did Elizabeth Housley meet her husband, George William Stafford, a seaman, through some Lyon connections, but to date this remains a mystery.)

                      Elizabeth Housley living with Peter Lyon and family in Derby St Peters in 1861:

                      Lyon 1861 census

                       

                      A Henrietta Lyon was married in 1860. Her father was Matthew, a Navy Captain. The 1857 Derby Directory listed a Richard Woolhouse, plumber, glazier, and gas fitter on St. Peter’s Street. Robert lived in St. Peter’s parish at the time of his death. An Alfred Lyon, son of Alfred and Jemima Lyon 93 Friargate, Derby was baptised on December 4, 1877. An Allen Hewley Lyon, born February 1, 1879 was baptised June 17 1879.

                       

                      Anne wrote in August 1854: “KERRY was married three weeks since to ELIZABETH EATON. He has left Smith some time.” Perhaps this was the same person referred to by Joseph: “BILL KERRY, the blacksmith for DANIEL SMITH, is working for John Fletcher lace manufacturer.” According to the 1841 census, Elizabeth age 12, was the oldest daughter of Thomas and Rebecca Eaton. She would certainly have been of marriagable age in 1854. A William Kerry, age 14, was listed as a blacksmith’s apprentice in the 1851 census; but another William Kerry who was 29 in 1851 was already working for Daniel Smith as a blacksmith. REBECCA EATON was listed in the 1851 census as a widow serving as a nurse in the John Housley household. The 1881 census lists the family of William Kerry, blacksmith, as Jane, 19; William 13; Anne, 7; and Joseph, 4. Elizabeth is not mentioned but Bill is not listed as a widower.

                      Anne also wrote in 1854 that she had not seen or heard anything of DICK HANSON for two years. Joseph wrote that he did not know Old BETTY HANSON’S son. A Richard Hanson, age 24 in 1851, lived with a family named Moore. His occupation was listed as “journeyman knitter.” An Elizabeth Hanson listed as 24 in 1851 could hardly be “Old Betty.” Emma wrote in June 1856 that JOE OLDKNOW age 27 had married Mrs. Gribble’s servant age 17.

                      Anne wrote that “JOHN SPENCER had not been since father died.” The only John Spencer in Smalley in 1841 was four years old. He would have been 11 at the time of William Housley’s death. Certainly, the two could have been friends, but perhaps young John was named for his grandfather who was a crony of William’s living in a locality not included in the Smalley census.

                      TAILOR ALLEN had lost his wife and was still living in the old house in 1872. JACK WHITE had died very suddenly, and DR. BODEN had died also. Dr. Boden’s first name was Robert. He was 53 in 1851, and was probably the Robert, son of Richard and Jane, who was christened in Morely in 1797. By 1861, he had married Catherine, a native of Smalley, who was at least 14 years his junior–18 according to the 1871 census!

                      Among the family’s dearest friends were JOSEPH AND ELIZABETH DAVY, who were married some time after 1841. Mrs. Davy was born in 1812 and her husband in 1805. In 1841, the Kidsley Park farm household included DANIEL SMITH 72, Elizabeth 29 and 5 year old Hannah Smith. In 1851, Mr. Davy’s brother William and 10 year old Emma Davy were visiting from London. Joseph reported the death of both Davy brothers in 1872; Joseph apparently died first.

                      Mrs. Davy’s father, was a well known Quaker. In 1856, Emma wrote: “Mr. Smith is very hearty and looks much the same.” He died in December 1863 at the age of 94. George Fox, the founder of the Quakers visited Kidsley Park in 1650 and 1654.

                      Mr. Davy died in 1863, but in 1854 Anne wrote how ill he had been for two years. “For two last winters we never thought he would live. He is now able to go out a little on the pony.” In March 1856, his wife wrote, “My husband is in poor health and fell.” Later in 1856, Emma wrote, “Mr. Davy is living which is a great wonder. Mrs. Davy is very delicate but as good a friend as ever.”

                      In The Derbyshire Advertiser and Journal, 15 May 1863:

                      Davy Death

                       

                      Whenever the girls sent greetings from Mrs. Davy they used her Quaker speech pattern of “thee and thy.”  Mrs. Davy wrote to George on March 21 1856 sending some gifts from his sisters and a portrait of their mother–“Emma is away yet and A is so much worse.” Mrs. Davy concluded: “With best wishes for thy health and prosperity in this world and the next I am thy sincere friend.”

                      Mrs. Davy later remarried. Her new husband was W.T. BARBER. The 1861 census lists William Barber, 35, Bachelor of Arts, Cambridge, living with his 82 year old widowed mother on an 135 acre farm with three servants. One of these may have been the Ann who, according to Joseph, married Jack Oldknow. By 1871 the farm, now occupied by William, 47 and Elizabeth, 57, had grown to 189 acres. Meanwhile, Kidsley Park Farm became the home of the Housleys’ cousin Selina Carrington and her husband Walker Martin. Both Barbers were still living in 1881.

                      Mrs. Davy was described in Kerry’s History of Smalley as “an accomplished and exemplary lady.” A piece of her poetry “Farewell to Kidsley Park” was published in the history. It was probably written when Elizabeth moved to the Barber farm. Emma sent one of her poems to George. It was supposed to be about their house. “We have sent you a piece of poetry that Mrs. Davy composed about our ‘Old House.’ I am sure you will like it though you may not understand all the allusions she makes use of as well as we do.”

                      Kiddsley Park Farm, Smalley, in 1898.  (note that the Housley’s lived at Kiddsley Grange Farm, and the Davy’s at neighbouring Kiddsley Park Farm)

                      Kiddsley Park Farm

                       

                      Emma was not sure if George wanted to hear the local gossip (“I don’t know whether such little particulars will interest you”), but shared it anyway. In November 1855: “We have let the house to Mr. Gribble. I dare say you know who he married, Matilda Else. They came from Lincoln here in March. Mrs. Gribble gets drunk nearly every day and there are such goings on it is really shameful. So you may be sure we have not very pleasant neighbors but we have very little to do with them.”

                      John Else and his wife Hannah and their children John and Harriet (who were born in Smalley) lived in Tag Hill in 1851. With them lived a granddaughter Matilda Gribble age 3 who was born in Lincoln. A Matilda, daughter of John and Hannah, was christened in 1815. (A Sam Else died when he fell down the steps of a bar in 1855.)

                      #6269
                      TracyTracy
                      Participant

                        The Housley Letters 

                        From Barbara Housley’s Narrative on the Letters.

                         

                        William Housley (1781-1848) and Ellen Carrington were married on May 30, 1814 at St. Oswald’s church in Ashbourne. William died in 1848 at the age of 67 of “disease of lungs and general debility”. Ellen died in 1872.

                        Marriage of William Housley and Ellen Carrington in Ashbourne in 1814:

                        William and Ellen Marriage

                         

                        Parish records show three children for William and his first wife, Mary, Ellens’ sister, who were married December 29, 1806: Mary Ann, christened in 1808 and mentioned frequently in the letters; Elizabeth, christened in 1810, but never mentioned in any letters; and William, born in 1812, probably referred to as Will in the letters. Mary died in 1813.

                        William and Ellen had ten children: John, Samuel, Edward, Anne, Charles, George, Joseph, Robert, Emma, and Joseph. The first Joseph died at the age of four, and the last son was also named Joseph. Anne never married, Charles emigrated to Australia in 1851, and George to USA, also in 1851. The letters are to George, from his sisters and brothers in England.

                        The following are excerpts of those letters, including excerpts of Barbara Housley’s “Narrative on Historic Letters”. They are grouped according to who they refer to, rather than chronological order.

                         

                        ELLEN HOUSLEY 1795-1872

                        Joseph wrote that when Emma was married, Ellen “broke up the comfortable home and the things went to Derby and she went to live with them but Derby didn’t agree with her so she left again leaving her things behind and came to live with John in the new house where she died.” Ellen was listed with John’s household in the 1871 census.
                        In May 1872, the Ilkeston Pioneer carried this notice: “Mr. Hopkins will sell by auction on Saturday next the eleventh of May 1872 the whole of the useful furniture, sewing machine, etc. nearly new on the premises of the late Mrs. Housley at Smalley near Heanor in the county of Derby. Sale at one o’clock in the afternoon.”

                        Ellen’s family was evidently rather prominant in Smalley. Two Carringtons (John and William) served on the Parish Council in 1794. Parish records are full of Carrington marriages and christenings; census records confirm many of the family groupings.

                        In June of 1856, Emma wrote: “Mother looks as well as ever and was told by a lady the other day that she looked handsome.” Later she wrote: “Mother is as stout as ever although she sometimes complains of not being able to do as she used to.”

                         

                        Mary’s children:

                        MARY ANN HOUSLEY  1808-1878

                        There were hard feelings between Mary Ann and Ellen and her children. Anne wrote: “If you remember we were not very friendly when you left. They never came and nothing was too bad for Mary Ann to say of Mother and me, but when Robert died Mother sent for her to the funeral but she did not think well to come so we took no more notice. She would not allow her children to come either.”

                        Mary Ann was unlucky in love! In Anne’s second letter she wrote: “William Carrington is paying Mary Ann great attention. He is living in London but they write to each other….We expect it will be a match.” Apparantly the courtship was stormy for in 1855, Emma wrote: “Mary Ann’s wedding with William Carrington has dropped through after she had prepared everything, dresses and all for the occassion.” Then in 1856, Emma wrote: “William Carrington and Mary Ann are separated. They wore him out with their nonsense.” Whether they ever married is unclear. Joseph wrote in 1872: “Mary Ann was married but her husband has left her. She is in very poor health. She has one daughter and they are living with their mother at Smalley.”

                        Regarding William Carrington, Emma supplied this bit of news: “His sister, Mrs. Lily, has eloped with a married man. Is she not a nice person!”

                         

                        WILLIAM HOUSLEY JR. 1812-1890

                        According to a letter from Anne, Will’s two sons and daughter were sent to learn dancing so they would be “fit for any society.” Will’s wife was Dorothy Palfry. They were married in Denby on October 20, 1836 when Will was 24. According to the 1851 census, Will and Dorothy had three sons: Alfred 14, Edwin 12, and William 10. All three boys were born in Denby.

                        In his letter of May 30, 1872, after just bemoaning that all of his brothers and sisters are gone except Sam and John, Joseph added: “Will is living still.” In another 1872 letter Joseph wrote, “Will is living at Heanor yet and carrying on his cattle dealing.” The 1871 census listed Will, 59, and his son William, 30, of Lascoe Road, Heanor, as cattle dealers.

                         

                        Ellen’s children:

                        JOHN HOUSLEY  1815-1893

                        John married Sarah Baggally in Morely in 1838. They had at least six children. Elizabeth (born 2 May 1838) was “out service” in 1854. In her “third year out,” Elizabeth was described by Anne as “a very nice steady girl but quite a woman in appearance.” One of her positions was with a Mrs. Frearson in Heanor. Emma wrote in 1856: “Elizabeth is still at Mrs. Frearson. She is such a fine stout girl you would not know her.” Joseph wrote in 1872 that Elizabeth was in service with Mrs. Eliza Sitwell at Derby. (About 1850, Miss Eliza Wilmot-Sitwell provided for a small porch with a handsome Norman doorway at the west end of the St. John the Baptist parish church in Smalley.)

                        According to Elizabeth’s birth certificate and the 1841 census, John was a butcher. By 1851, the household included a nurse and a servant, and John was listed as a “victular.” Anne wrote in February 1854, “John has left the Public House a year and a half ago. He is living where Plumbs (Ann Plumb witnessed William’s death certificate with her mark) did and Thomas Allen has the land. He has been working at James Eley’s all winter.” In 1861, Ellen lived with John and Sarah and the three boys.

                        John sold his share in the inheritance from their mother and disappeared after her death. (He died in Doncaster, Yorkshire, in 1893.) At that time Charles, the youngest would have been 21. Indeed, Joseph wrote in July 1872: “John’s children are all grown up”.

                        In May 1872, Joseph wrote: “For what do you think, John has sold his share and he has acted very bad since his wife died and at the same time he sold all his furniture. You may guess I have never seen him but once since poor mother’s funeral and he is gone now no one knows where.”

                        In February 1874 Joseph wrote: “You want to know what made John go away. Well, I will give you one reason. I think I told you that when his wife died he persuaded me to leave Derby and come to live with him. Well so we did and dear Harriet to keep his house. Well he insulted my wife and offered things to her that was not proper and my dear wife had the power to resist his unmanly conduct. I did not think he could of served me such a dirty trick so that is one thing dear brother. He could not look me in the face when we met. Then after we left him he got a woman in the house and I suppose they lived as man and wife. She caught the small pox and died and there he was by himself like some wild man. Well dear brother I could not go to him again after he had served me and mine as he had and I believe he was greatly in debt too so that he sold his share out of the property and when he received the money at Belper he went away and has never been seen by any of us since but I have heard of him being at Sheffield enquiring for Sam Caldwell. You will remember him. He worked in the Nag’s Head yard but I have heard nothing no more of him.”

                        A mention of a John Housley of Heanor in the Nottinghma Journal 1875.  I don’t know for sure if the John mentioned here is the brother John who Joseph describes above as behaving improperly to his wife. John Housley had a son Joseph, born in 1840, and John’s wife Sarah died in 1870.

                        John Housley

                         

                        In 1876, the solicitor wrote to George: “Have you heard of John Housley? He is entitled to Robert’s share and I want him to claim it.”

                         

                        SAMUEL HOUSLEY 1816-

                        Sam married Elizabeth Brookes of Sutton Coldfield, and they had three daughters: Elizabeth, Mary Anne and Catherine.  Elizabeth his wife died in 1849, a few months after Samuel’s father William died in 1848. The particular circumstances relating to these individuals have been discussed in previous chapters; the following are letter excerpts relating to them.

                        Death of William Housley 15 Dec 1848, and Elizabeth Housley 5 April 1849, Smalley:

                        Housley Deaths

                         

                        Joseph wrote in December 1872: “I saw one of Sam’s daughters, the youngest Kate, you would remember her a baby I dare say. She is very comfortably married.”

                        In the same letter (December 15, 1872), Joseph wrote:  “I think we have now found all out now that is concerned in the matter for there was only Sam that we did not know his whereabouts but I was informed a week ago that he is dead–died about three years ago in Birmingham Union. Poor Sam. He ought to have come to a better end than that….His daughter and her husband went to Brimingham and also to Sutton Coldfield that is where he married his wife from and found out his wife’s brother. It appears he has been there and at Birmingham ever since he went away but ever fond of drink.”

                        (Sam, however, was still alive in 1871, living as a lodger at the George and Dragon Inn, Henley in Arden. And no trace of Sam has been found since. It would appear that Sam did not want to be found.)

                         

                        EDWARD HOUSLEY 1819-1843

                        Edward died before George left for USA in 1851, and as such there is no mention of him in the letters.

                         

                        ANNE HOUSLEY 1821-1856

                        Anne wrote two letters to her brother George between February 1854 and her death in 1856. Apparently she suffered from a lung disease for she wrote: “I can say you will be surprised I am still living and better but still cough and spit a deal. Can do nothing but sit and sew.” According to the 1851 census, Anne, then 29, was a seamstress. Their friend, Mrs. Davy, wrote in March 1856: “This I send in a box to my Brother….The pincushion cover and pen wiper are Anne’s work–are for thy wife. She would have made it up had she been able.” Anne was not living at home at the time of the 1841 census. She would have been 19 or 20 and perhaps was “out service.”

                        In her second letter Anne wrote: “It is a great trouble now for me to write…as the body weakens so does the mind often. I have been very weak all summer. That I continue is a wonder to all and to spit so much although much better than when you left home.” She also wrote: “You know I had a desire for America years ago. Were I in health and strength, it would be the land of my adoption.”

                        In November 1855, Emma wrote, “Anne has been very ill all summer and has not been able to write or do anything.” Their neighbor Mrs. Davy wrote on March 21, 1856: “I fear Anne will not be long without a change.” In a black-edged letter the following June, Emma wrote: “I need not tell you how happy she was and how calmly and peacefully she died. She only kept in bed two days.”

                        Certainly Anne was a woman of deep faith and strong religious convictions. When she wrote that they were hoping to hear of Charles’ success on the gold fields she added: “But I would rather hear of him having sought and found the Pearl of great price than all the gold Australia can produce, (For what shall it profit a man if he gain the whole world and lose his soul?).” Then she asked George: “I should like to learn how it was you were first led to seek pardon and a savior. I do feel truly rejoiced to hear you have been led to seek and find this Pearl through the workings of the Holy Spirit and I do pray that He who has begun this good work in each of us may fulfill it and carry it on even unto the end and I can never doubt the willingness of Jesus who laid down his life for us. He who said whoever that cometh unto me I will in no wise cast out.”

                        Anne’s will was probated October 14, 1856. Mr. William Davy of Kidsley Park appeared for the family. Her estate was valued at under £20. Emma was to receive fancy needlework, a four post bedstead, feather bed and bedding, a mahogany chest of drawers, plates, linen and china. Emma was also to receive Anne’s writing desk. There was a condition that Ellen would have use of these items until her death.

                        The money that Anne was to receive from her grandfather, William Carrington, and her father, William Housley was to be distributed one third to Joseph, one third to Emma, and one third to be divided between her four neices: John’s daughter Elizabeth, 18, and Sam’s daughters Elizabeth, 10, Mary Ann, 9 and Catharine, age 7 to be paid by the trustees as they think “most useful and proper.” Emma Lyon and Elizabeth Davy were the witnesses.

                        The Carrington Farm:

                        Carringtons Farm

                         

                        CHARLES HOUSLEY 1823-1855

                        Charles went to Australia in 1851, and was last heard from in January 1853. According to the solicitor, who wrote to George on June 3, 1874, Charles had received advances on the settlement of their parent’s estate. “Your promissory note with the two signed by your brother Charles for 20 pounds he received from his father and 20 pounds he received from his mother are now in the possession of the court.”

                        Charles and George were probably quite close friends. Anne wrote in 1854: “Charles inquired very particularly in both his letters after you.”

                        According to Anne, Charles and a friend married two sisters. He and his father-in-law had a farm where they had 130 cows and 60 pigs. Whatever the trade he learned in England, he never worked at it once he reached Australia. While it does not seem that Charles went to Australia because gold had been discovered there, he was soon caught up in “gold fever”. Anne wrote: “I dare say you have heard of the immense gold fields of Australia discovered about the time he went. Thousands have since then emigrated to Australia, both high and low. Such accounts we heard in the papers of people amassing fortunes we could not believe. I asked him when I wrote if it was true. He said this was no exaggeration for people were making their fortune daily and he intended going to the diggings in six weeks for he could stay away no longer so that we are hoping to hear of his success if he is alive.”

                        In March 1856, Mrs. Davy wrote: “I am sorry to tell thee they have had a letter from Charles’s wife giving account of Charles’s death of 6 months consumption at the Victoria diggings. He has left 2 children a boy and a girl William and Ellen.” In June of the same year in a black edged letter, Emma wrote: “I think Mrs. Davy mentioned Charles’s death in her note. His wife wrote to us. They have two children Helen and William. Poor dear little things. How much I should like to see them all. She writes very affectionately.”

                        In December 1872, Joseph wrote: “I’m told that Charles two daughters has wrote to Smalley post office making inquiries about his share….” In January 1876, the solicitor wrote: “Charles Housley’s children have claimed their father’s share.”

                         

                        GEORGE HOUSLEY 1824-1877

                        George emigrated to the United states in 1851, arriving in July. The solicitor Abraham John Flint referred in a letter to a 15-pound advance which was made to George on June 9, 1851. This certainly was connected to his journey. George settled along the Delaware River in Bucks County, Pennsylvania. The letters from the solicitor were addressed to: Lahaska Post Office, Bucks County, Pennsylvania.

                        George married Sarah Ann Hill on May 6, 1854 in Doylestown, Bucks County, Pennsylvania. In her first letter (February 1854), Anne wrote: “We want to know who and what is this Miss Hill you name in your letter. What age is she? Send us all the particulars but I would advise you not to get married until you have sufficient to make a comfortable home.”

                        Upon learning of George’s marriage, Anne wrote: “I hope dear brother you may be happy with your wife….I hope you will be as a son to her parents. Mother unites with me in kind love to you both and to your father and mother with best wishes for your health and happiness.” In 1872 (December) Joseph wrote: “I am sorry to hear that sister’s father is so ill. It is what we must all come to some time and hope we shall meet where there is no more trouble.”

                        Emma wrote in 1855, “We write in love to your wife and yourself and you must write soon and tell us whether there is a little nephew or niece and what you call them.” In June of 1856, Emma wrote: “We want to see dear Sarah Ann and the dear little boy. We were much pleased with the “bit of news” you sent.” The bit of news was the birth of John Eley Housley, January 11, 1855. Emma concluded her letter “Give our very kindest love to dear sister and dearest Johnnie.”

                        In September 1872, Joseph wrote, “I was very sorry to hear that John your oldest had met with such a sad accident but I hope he is got alright again by this time.” In the same letter, Joseph asked: “Now I want to know what sort of a town you are living in or village. How far is it from New York? Now send me all particulars if you please.”

                        In March 1873 Harriet asked Sarah Ann: “And will you please send me all the news at the place and what it is like for it seems to me that it is a wild place but you must tell me what it is like….”.  The question of whether she was referring to Bucks County, Pennsylvania or some other place is raised in Joseph’s letter of the same week.
                        On March 17, 1873, Joseph wrote: “I was surprised to hear that you had gone so far away west. Now dear brother what ever are you doing there so far away from home and family–looking out for something better I suppose.”

                        The solicitor wrote on May 23, 1874: “Lately I have not written because I was not certain of your address and because I doubted I had much interesting news to tell you.” Later, Joseph wrote concerning the problems settling the estate, “You see dear brother there is only me here on our side and I cannot do much. I wish you were here to help me a bit and if you think of going for another summer trip this turn you might as well run over here.”

                        Apparently, George had indicated he might return to England for a visit in 1856. Emma wrote concerning the portrait of their mother which had been sent to George: “I hope you like mother’s portrait. I did not see it but I suppose it was not quite perfect about the eyes….Joseph and I intend having ours taken for you when you come over….Do come over before very long.”

                        In March 1873, Joseph wrote: “You ask me what I think of you coming to England. I think as you have given the trustee power to sign for you I think you could do no good but I should like to see you once again for all that. I can’t say whether there would be anything amiss if you did come as you say it would be throwing good money after bad.”

                        On June 10, 1875, the solicitor wrote: “I have been expecting to hear from you for some time past. Please let me hear what you are doing and where you are living and how I must send you your money.” George’s big news at that time was that on May 3, 1875, he had become a naturalized citizen “renouncing and abjuring all allegiance and fidelity to every foreign prince, potentate, state and sovereignity whatsoever, and particularly to Victoria Queen of Great Britain of whom he was before a subject.”

                         

                        ROBERT HOUSLEY 1832-1851

                        In 1854, Anne wrote: “Poor Robert. He died in August after you left he broke a blood vessel in the lung.”
                        From Joseph’s first letter we learn that Robert was 19 when he died: “Dear brother there have been a great many changes in the family since you left us. All is gone except myself and John and Sam–we have heard nothing of him since he left. Robert died first when he was 19 years of age. Then Anne and Charles too died in Australia and then a number of years elapsed before anyone else. Then John lost his wife, then Emma, and last poor dear mother died last January on the 11th.”

                        Anne described Robert’s death in this way: “He had thrown up blood many times before in the spring but the last attack weakened him that he only lived a fortnight after. He died at Derby. Mother was with him. Although he suffered much he never uttered a murmur or regret and always a smile on his face for everyone that saw him. He will be regretted by all that knew him”.

                        Robert died a resident of St. Peter’s Parish, Derby, but was buried in Smalley on August 16, 1851.
                        Apparently Robert was apprenticed to be a joiner for, according to Anne, Joseph took his place: “Joseph wanted to be a joiner. We thought we could do no better than let him take Robert’s place which he did the October after and is there still.”

                        In 1876, the solicitor wrote to George: “Have you heard of John Housley? He is entitled to Robert’s share and I want him to claim it.”

                         

                        EMMA HOUSLEY 1836-1871

                        Emma was not mentioned in Anne’s first letter. In the second, Anne wrote that Emma was living at Spondon with two ladies in her “third situation,” and added, “She is grown a bouncing woman.” Anne described her sister well. Emma wrote in her first letter (November 12, 1855): “I must tell you that I am just 21 and we had my pudding last Sunday. I wish I could send you a piece.”

                        From Emma’s letters we learn that she was living in Derby from May until November 1855 with Mr. Haywood, an iron merchant. She explained, “He has failed and I have been obliged to leave,” adding, “I expect going to a new situation very soon. It is at Belper.” In 1851 records, William Haywood, age 22, was listed as an iron foundry worker. In the 1857 Derby Directory, James and George were listed as iron and brass founders and ironmongers with an address at 9 Market Place, Derby.

                        In June 1856, Emma wrote from “The Cedars, Ashbourne Road” where she was working for Mr. Handysides.
                        While she was working for Mr. Handysides, Emma wrote: “Mother is thinking of coming to live at Derby. That will be nice for Joseph and I.”

                        Friargate and Ashbourne Road were located in St. Werburgh’s Parish. (In fact, St. Werburgh’s vicarage was at 185 Surrey Street. This clue led to the discovery of the record of Emma’s marriage on May 6, 1858, to Edwin Welch Harvey, son of Samuel Harvey in St. Werburgh’s.)

                        In 1872, Joseph wrote: “Our sister Emma, she died at Derby at her own home for she was married. She has left two young children behind. The husband was the son of the man that I went apprentice to and has caused a great deal of trouble to our family and I believe hastened poor Mother’s death….”.   Joseph added that he believed Emma’s “complaint” was consumption and that she was sick a good bit. Joseph wrote: “Mother was living with John when I came home (from Ascension Island around 1867? or to Smalley from Derby around 1870?) for when Emma was married she broke up the comfortable home and the things went to Derby and she went to live with them but Derby did not agree with her so she had to leave it again but left all her things there.”

                        Emma Housley and Edwin Welch Harvey wedding, 1858:

                        Emma Housley wedding

                         

                        JOSEPH HOUSLEY 1838-1893

                        We first hear of Joseph in a letter from Anne to George in 1854. “Joseph wanted to be a joiner. We thought we could do no better than let him take Robert’s place which he did the October after (probably 1851) and is there still. He is grown as tall as you I think quite a man.” Emma concurred in her first letter: “He is quite a man in his appearance and quite as tall as you.”

                        From Emma we learn in 1855: “Joseph has left Mr. Harvey. He had not work to employ him. So mother thought he had better leave his indenture and be at liberty at once than wait for Harvey to be a bankrupt. He has got a very good place of work now and is very steady.” In June of 1856, Emma wrote “Joseph and I intend to have our portraits taken for you when you come over….Mother is thinking of coming to Derby. That will be nice for Joseph and I. Joseph is very hearty I am happy to say.”

                        According to Joseph’s letters, he was married to Harriet Ballard. Joseph described their miraculous reunion in this way: “I must tell you that I have been abroad myself to the Island of Ascension. (Elsewhere he wrote that he was on the island when the American civil war broke out). I went as a Royal Marine and worked at my trade and saved a bit of money–enough to buy my discharge and enough to get married with but while I was out on the island who should I meet with there but my dear wife’s sister. (On two occasions Joseph and Harriet sent George the name and address of Harriet’s sister, Mrs. Brooks, in Susquehanna Depot, Pennsylvania, but it is not clear whether this was the same sister.) She was lady’s maid to the captain’s wife. Though I had never seen her before we got to know each other somehow so from that me and my wife recommenced our correspondence and you may be sure I wanted to get home to her. But as soon as I did get home that is to England I was not long before I was married and I have not regretted yet for we are very comfortable as well as circumstances will allow for I am only a journeyman joiner.”

                        Proudly, Joseph wrote: “My little family consists of three nice children–John, Joseph and Susy Annie.” On her birth certificate, Susy Ann’s birthdate is listed as 1871. Parish records list a Lucy Annie christened in 1873. The boys were born in Derby, John in 1868 and Joseph in 1869. In his second letter, Joseph repeated: “I have got three nice children, a good wife and I often think is more than I have deserved.” On August 6, 1873, Joseph and Harriet wrote: “We both thank you dear sister for the pieces of money you sent for the children. I don’t know as I have ever see any before.” Joseph ended another letter: “Now I must close with our kindest love to you all and kisses from the children.”

                        In Harriet’s letter to Sarah Ann (March 19, 1873), she promised: “I will send you myself and as soon as the weather gets warm as I can take the children to Derby, I will have them taken and send them, but it is too cold yet for we have had a very cold winter and a great deal of rain.” At this time, the children were all under 6 and the baby was not yet two.

                        In March 1873 Joseph wrote: “I have been working down at Heanor gate there is a joiner shop there where Kings used to live I have been working there this winter and part of last summer but the wages is very low but it is near home that is one comfort.” (Heanor Gate is about 1/4 mile from Kidsley Grange. There was a school and industrial park there in 1988.) At this time Joseph and his family were living in “the big house–in Old Betty Hanson’s house.” The address in the 1871 census was Smalley Lane.

                        A glimpse into Joseph’s personality is revealed by this remark to George in an 1872 letter: “Many thanks for your portrait and will send ours when we can get them taken for I never had but one taken and that was in my old clothes and dear Harriet is not willing to part with that. I tell her she ought to be satisfied with the original.”

                        On one occasion Joseph and Harriet both sent seeds. (Marks are still visible on the paper.) Joseph sent “the best cow cabbage seed in the country–Robinson Champion,” and Harriet sent red cabbage–Shaw’s Improved Red. Possibly cow cabbage was also known as ox cabbage: “I hope you will have some good cabbages for the Ox cabbage takes all the prizes here. I suppose you will be taking the prizes out there with them.” Joseph wrote that he would put the name of the seeds by each “but I should think that will not matter. You will tell the difference when they come up.”

                        George apparently would have liked Joseph to come to him as early as 1854. Anne wrote: “As to his coming to you that must be left for the present.” In 1872, Joseph wrote: “I have been thinking of making a move from here for some time before I heard from you for it is living from hand to mouth and never certain of a job long either.” Joseph then made plans to come to the United States in the spring of 1873. “For I intend all being well leaving England in the spring. Many thanks for your kind offer but I hope we shall be able to get a comfortable place before we have been out long.” Joseph promised to bring some things George wanted and asked: “What sort of things would be the best to bring out there for I don’t want to bring a lot that is useless.” Joseph’s plans are confirmed in a letter from the solicitor May 23, 1874: “I trust you are prospering and in good health. Joseph seems desirous of coming out to you when this is settled.”

                        George must have been reminiscing about gooseberries (Heanor has an annual gooseberry show–one was held July 28, 1872) and Joseph promised to bring cuttings when they came: “Dear Brother, I could not get the gooseberries for they was all gathered when I received your letter but we shall be able to get some seed out the first chance and I shall try to bring some cuttings out along.” In the same letter that he sent the cabbage seeds Joseph wrote: “I have got some gooseberries drying this year for you. They are very fine ones but I have only four as yet but I was promised some more when they were ripe.” In another letter Joseph sent gooseberry seeds and wrote their names: Victoria, Gharibaldi and Globe.

                        In September 1872 Joseph wrote; “My wife is anxious to come. I hope it will suit her health for she is not over strong.” Elsewhere Joseph wrote that Harriet was “middling sometimes. She is subject to sick headaches. It knocks her up completely when they come on.” In December 1872 Joseph wrote, “Now dear brother about us coming to America you know we shall have to wait until this affair is settled and if it is not settled and thrown into Chancery I’m afraid we shall have to stay in England for I shall never be able to save money enough to bring me out and my family but I hope of better things.”

                        On July 19, 1875 Abraham Flint (the solicitor) wrote: “Joseph Housley has removed from Smalley and is working on some new foundry buildings at Little Chester near Derby. He lives at a village called Little Eaton near Derby. If you address your letter to him as Joseph Housley, carpenter, Little Eaton near Derby that will no doubt find him.”

                        George did not save any letters from Joseph after 1874, hopefully he did reach him at Little Eaton. Joseph and his family are not listed in either Little Eaton or Derby on the 1881 census.

                        In his last letter (February 11, 1874), Joseph sounded very discouraged and wrote that Harriet’s parents were very poorly and both had been “in bed for a long time.” In addition, Harriet and the children had been ill.
                        The move to Little Eaton may indicate that Joseph received his settlement because in August, 1873, he wrote: “I think this is bad news enough and bad luck too, but I have had little else since I came to live at Kiddsley cottages but perhaps it is all for the best if one could only think so. I have begun to think there will be no chance for us coming over to you for I am afraid there will not be so much left as will bring us out without it is settled very shortly but I don’t intend leaving this house until it is settled either one way or the other. “

                        Joseph Housley and the Kiddsley cottages:

                        Joseph Housley

                        #6267
                        TracyTracy
                        Participant

                          From Tanganyika with Love

                          continued part 8

                          With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                          Morogoro 20th January 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          It is all arranged for us to go on three months leave to Cape Town next month so
                          get out your flags. How I shall love showing off Kate and John to you and this time
                          George will be with us and you’ll be able to get to know him properly. You can’t think
                          what a comfort it will be to leave all the worries of baggage and tipping to him. We will all
                          be travelling by ship to Durban and from there to Cape Town by train. I rather dread the
                          journey because there is a fifth little Rushby on the way and, as always, I am very
                          queasy.

                          Kate has become such a little companion to me that I dread the thought of leaving
                          her behind with you to start schooling. I miss Ann and George so much now and must
                          face separation from Kate as well. There does not seem to be any alternative though.
                          There is a boarding school in Arusha and another has recently been started in Mbeya,
                          but both places are so far away and I know she would be very unhappy as a boarder at
                          this stage. Living happily with you and attending a day school might wean her of her
                          dependance upon me. As soon as this wretched war ends we mean to get Ann and
                          George back home and Kate too and they can then all go to boarding school together.
                          If I were a more methodical person I would try to teach Kate myself, but being a
                          muddler I will have my hands full with Johnny and the new baby. Life passes pleasantly
                          but quietly here. Much of my time is taken up with entertaining the children and sewing
                          for them and just waiting for George to come home.

                          George works so hard on these safaris and this endless elephant hunting to
                          protect native crops entails so much foot safari, that he has lost a good deal of weight. it
                          is more than ten years since he had a holiday so he is greatly looking forward to this one.
                          Four whole months together!

                          I should like to keep the ayah, Janet, for the new baby, but she says she wants
                          to return to her home in the Southern Highlands Province and take a job there. She is
                          unusually efficient and so clean, and the houseboy and cook are quite scared of her. She
                          bawls at them if the children’s meals are served a few minutes late but she is always
                          respectful towards me and practically creeps around on tiptoe when George is home.
                          She has a room next to the outside kitchen. One night thieves broke into the kitchen and
                          stole a few things, also a canvas chair and mat from the verandah. Ayah heard them, and
                          grabbing a bit of firewood, she gave chase. Her shouts so alarmed the thieves that they
                          ran off up the hill jettisoning their loot as they ran. She is a great character.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 30th July 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Safely back in Morogoro after a rather grim voyage from Durban. Our ship was
                          completely blacked out at night and we had to sleep with warm clothing and life belts
                          handy and had so many tedious boat drills. It was a nuisance being held up for a whole
                          month in Durban, because I was so very pregnant when we did embark. In fact George
                          suggested that I had better hide in the ‘Ladies’ until the ship sailed for fear the Captain
                          might refuse to take me. It seems that the ship, on which we were originally booked to
                          travel, was torpedoed somewhere off the Cape.

                          We have been given a very large house this tour with a mosquito netted
                          sleeping porch which will be fine for the new baby. The only disadvantage is that the
                          house is on the very edge of the residential part of Morogoro and Johnny will have to
                          go quite a distance to find playmates.

                          I still miss Kate terribly. She is a loving little person. I had prepared for a scene
                          when we said good-bye but I never expected that she would be the comforter. It
                          nearly broke my heart when she put her arms around me and said, “I’m so sorry
                          Mummy, please don’t cry. I’ll be good. Please don’t cry.” I’m afraid it was all very
                          harrowing for you also. It is a great comfort to hear that she has settled down so happily.
                          I try not to think consciously of my absent children and remind myself that there are
                          thousands of mothers in the same boat, but they are always there at the back of my
                          mind.

                          Mother writes that Ann and George are perfectly happy and well, and that though
                          German bombers do fly over fairly frequently, they are unlikely to drop their bombs on
                          a small place like Jacksdale.

                          George has already left on safari to the Rufiji. There was no replacement for his
                          job while he was away so he is anxious to get things moving again. Johnny and I are
                          going to move in with friends until he returns, just in case all the travelling around brings
                          the new baby on earlier than expected.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 26th August 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Our new son, James Caleb. was born at 3.30 pm yesterday afternoon, with a
                          minimum of fuss, in the hospital here. The Doctor was out so my friend, Sister Murray,
                          delivered the baby. The Sister is a Scots girl, very efficient and calm and encouraging,
                          and an ideal person to have around at such a time.

                          Everything, this time, went without a hitch and I feel fine and proud of my
                          bouncing son. He weighs nine pounds and ten ounces and is a big boned fellow with
                          dark hair and unusually strongly marked eyebrows. His eyes are strong too and already
                          seem to focus. George is delighted with him and brought Hugh Nelson to see him this
                          morning. Hugh took one look, and, astonished I suppose by the baby’s apparent
                          awareness, said, “Gosh, this one has been here before.” The baby’s cot is beside my
                          bed so I can admire him as much as I please. He has large strong hands and George
                          reckons he’ll make a good boxer some day.

                          Another of my early visitors was Mabemba, George’s orderly. He is a very big
                          African and looks impressive in his Game Scouts uniform. George met him years ago at
                          Mahenge when he was a young elephant hunter and Mabemba was an Askari in the
                          Police. Mabemba takes quite a proprietary interest in the family.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 25th December 1941

                          Dearest Family,

                          Christmas Day today, but not a gay one. I have Johnny in bed with a poisoned
                          leg so he missed the children’s party at the Club. To make things a little festive I have
                          put up a little Christmas tree in the children’s room and have hung up streamers and
                          balloons above the beds. Johnny demands a lot of attention so it is fortunate that little
                          James is such a very good baby. He sleeps all night until 6 am when his feed is due.
                          One morning last week I got up as usual to feed him but I felt so dopey that I
                          thought I’d better have a cold wash first. I went into the bathroom and had a hurried
                          splash and then grabbed a towel to dry my face. Immediately I felt an agonising pain in
                          my nose. Reason? There was a scorpion in the towel! In no time at all my nose looked
                          like a pear and felt burning hot. The baby screamed with frustration whilst I feverishly
                          bathed my nose and applied this and that in an effort to cool it.

                          For three days my nose was very red and tender,”A real boozer nose”, said
                          George. But now, thank goodness, it is back to normal.

                          Some of the younger marrieds and a couple of bachelors came around,
                          complete with portable harmonium, to sing carols in the early hours. No sooner had we
                          settled down again to woo sleep when we were disturbed by shouts and screams from
                          our nearest neighbour’s house. “Just celebrating Christmas”, grunted George, but we
                          heard this morning that the neighbour had fallen down his verandah steps and broken his
                          leg.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro Hospital 30th September 1943

                          Dearest Family,

                          Well now we are eight! Our new son, Henry, was born on the night of the 28th.
                          He is a beautiful baby, weighing ten pounds three and a half ounces. This baby is very
                          well developed, handsome, and rather superior looking, and not at all amusing to look at
                          as the other boys were.George was born with a moustache, John had a large nose and
                          looked like a little old man, and Jim, bless his heart, looked rather like a baby
                          chimpanzee. Henry is different. One of my visitors said, “Heaven he’ll have to be a
                          Bishop!” I expect the lawn sleeves of his nightie really gave her that idea, but the baby
                          does look like ‘Someone’. He is very good and George, John, and Jim are delighted
                          with him, so is Mabemba.

                          We have a dear little nurse looking after us. She is very petite and childish
                          looking. When the baby was born and she brought him for me to see, the nurse asked
                          his name. I said jokingly, “His name is Benjamin – the last of the family.” She is now very
                          peeved to discover that his real name is Henry William and persists in calling him
                          ‘Benjie’.I am longing to get home and into my pleasant rut. I have been away for two
                          whole weeks and George is managing so well that I shall feel quite expendable if I don’t
                          get home soon. As our home is a couple of miles from the hospital, I arranged to move
                          in and stay with the nursing sister on the day the baby was due. There I remained for ten
                          whole days before the baby was born. Each afternoon George came and took me for a
                          ride in the bumpy Bedford lorry and the Doctor tried this and that but the baby refused
                          to be hurried.

                          On the tenth day I had the offer of a lift and decided to go home for tea and
                          surprise George. It was a surprise too, because George was entertaining a young
                          Game Ranger for tea and my arrival, looking like a perambulating big top, must have
                          been rather embarrassing.Henry was born at the exact moment that celebrations started
                          in the Township for the end of the Muslim religious festival of Ramadan. As the Doctor
                          held him up by his ankles, there was the sound of hooters and firecrackers from the town.
                          The baby has a birthmark in the shape of a crescent moon above his left eyebrow.

                          Eleanor.

                          Morogoro 26th January 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We have just heard that we are to be transferred to the Headquarters of the
                          Game Department at a place called Lyamungu in the Northern Province. George is not
                          at all pleased because he feels that the new job will entail a good deal of office work and
                          that his beloved but endless elephant hunting will be considerably curtailed. I am glad of
                          that and I am looking forward to seeing a new part of Tanganyika and particularly
                          Kilimanjaro which dominates Lyamungu.

                          Thank goodness our menagerie is now much smaller. We found a home for the
                          guinea pigs last December and Susie, our mischievous guinea-fowl, has flown off to find
                          a mate.Last week I went down to Dar es Salaam for a check up by Doctor John, a
                          woman doctor, leaving George to cope with the three boys. I was away two nights and
                          a day and returned early in the morning just as George was giving Henry his six o’clock
                          bottle. It always amazes me that so very masculine a man can do my chores with no
                          effort and I have a horrible suspicion that he does them better than I do. I enjoyed the
                          short break at the coast very much. I stayed with friends and we bathed in the warm sea
                          and saw a good film.

                          Now I suppose there will be a round of farewell parties. People in this country
                          are most kind and hospitable.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 20th March 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We left Morogoro after the round of farewell parties I had anticipated. The final
                          one was at the Club on Saturday night. George made a most amusing speech and the
                          party was a very pleasant occasion though I was rather tired after all the packing.
                          Several friends gathered to wave us off on Monday morning. We had two lorries
                          loaded with our goods. I rode in the cab of the first one with Henry on my knee. George
                          with John and Jim rode in the second one. As there was no room for them in the cab,
                          they sat on our couch which was placed across the width of the lorry behind the cab. This
                          seat was not as comfortable as it sounds, because the space behind the couch was
                          taken up with packing cases which were not lashed in place and these kept moving
                          forward as the lorry bumped its way over the bad road.

                          Soon there was hardly any leg room and George had constantly to stand up and
                          push the second layer of packing cases back to prevent them from toppling over onto
                          the children and himself. As it is now the rainy season the road was very muddy and
                          treacherous and the lorries travelled so slowly it was dark by the time we reached
                          Karogwe from where we were booked to take the train next morning to Moshi.
                          Next morning we heard that there had been a washaway on the line and that the
                          train would be delayed for at least twelve hours. I was not feeling well and certainly did
                          not enjoy my day. Early in the afternoon Jimmy ran into a wall and blackened both his
                          eyes. What a child! As the day wore on I felt worse and worse and when at last the train
                          did arrive I simply crawled into my bunk whilst George coped nobly with the luggage
                          and the children.

                          We arrived at Moshi at breakfast time and went straight to the Lion Cub Hotel
                          where I took to my bed with a high temperature. It was, of course, malaria. I always have
                          my attacks at the most inopportune times. Fortunately George ran into some friends
                          called Eccles and the wife Mollie came to my room and bathed Henry and prepared his
                          bottle and fed him. George looked after John and Jim. Next day I felt much better and
                          we drove out to Lyamungu the day after. There we had tea with the Game Warden and
                          his wife before moving into our new home nearby.

                          The Game Warden is Captain Monty Moore VC. He came out to Africa
                          originally as an Officer in the King’s African Rifles and liked the country so much he left the
                          Army and joined the Game Department. He was stationed at Banagi in the Serengetti
                          Game Reserve and is well known for his work with the lions there. He particularly tamed
                          some of the lions by feeding them so that they would come out into the open and could
                          readily be photographed by tourists. His wife Audrey, has written a book about their
                          experiences at Banagi. It is called “Serengetti”

                          Our cook, Hamisi, soon had a meal ready for us and we all went to bed early.
                          This is a very pleasant house and I know we will be happy here. I still feel a little shaky
                          but that is the result of all the quinine I have taken. I expect I shall feel fine in a day or two.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 15th May 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          Well, here we are settled comfortably in our very nice house. The house is
                          modern and roomy, and there is a large enclosed verandah, which will be a Godsend in
                          the wet weather as a playroom for the children. The only drawback is that there are so
                          many windows to be curtained and cleaned. The grounds consist of a very large lawn
                          and a few beds of roses and shrubs. It is an ideal garden for children, unlike our steeply
                          terraced garden at Morogoro.

                          Lyamungu is really the Government Coffee Research Station. It is about sixteen
                          miles from the town of Moshi which is the centre of the Tanganyika coffee growing
                          industry. Lyamungu, which means ‘place of God’ is in the foothills of Mt Kilimanjaro and
                          we have a beautiful view of Kilimanjaro. Kibo, the more spectacular of the two mountain
                          peaks, towers above us, looking from this angle, like a giant frosted plum pudding. Often the mountain is veiled by cloud and mist which sometimes comes down to
                          our level so that visibility is practically nil. George dislikes both mist and mountain but I
                          like both and so does John. He in fact saw Kibo before I did. On our first day here, the
                          peak was completely hidden by cloud. In the late afternoon when the children were
                          playing on the lawn outside I was indoors hanging curtains. I heard John call out, “Oh
                          Mummy, isn’t it beautiful!” I ran outside and there, above a scarf of cloud, I saw the
                          showy dome of Kibo with the setting sun shining on it tingeing the snow pink. It was an
                          unforgettable experience.

                          As this is the rainy season, the surrounding country side is very lush and green.
                          Everywhere one sees the rich green of the coffee plantations and the lighter green of
                          the banana groves. Unfortunately our walks are rather circumscribed. Except for the main road to Moshi, there is nowhere to walk except through the Government coffee
                          plantation. Paddy, our dog, thinks life is pretty boring as there is no bush here and
                          nothing to hunt. There are only half a dozen European families here and half of those are
                          on very distant terms with the other half which makes the station a rather uncomfortable
                          one.

                          The coffee expert who runs this station is annoyed because his European staff
                          has been cut down owing to the war, and three of the vacant houses and some office
                          buildings have been taken over temporarily by the Game Department. Another house
                          has been taken over by the head of the Labour Department. However I don’t suppose
                          the ill feeling will effect us much. We are so used to living in the bush that we are not
                          socially inclined any way.

                          Our cook, Hamisi, came with us from Morogoro but I had to engage a new
                          houseboy and kitchenboy. I first engaged a houseboy who produced a wonderful ‘chit’
                          in which his previous employer describes him as his “friend and confidant”. I felt rather
                          dubious about engaging him and how right I was. On his second day with us I produced
                          some of Henry’s napkins, previously rinsed by me, and asked this boy to wash them.
                          He looked most offended and told me that it was beneath his dignity to do women’s
                          work. We parted immediately with mutual relief.

                          Now I have a good natured fellow named Japhet who, though hard on crockery,
                          is prepared to do anything and loves playing with the children. He is a local boy, a
                          member of the Chagga tribe. These Chagga are most intelligent and, on the whole, well
                          to do as they all have their own small coffee shambas. Japhet tells me that his son is at
                          the Uganda University College studying medicine.The kitchen boy is a tall youth called
                          Tovelo, who helps both Hamisi, the cook, and the houseboy and also keeps an eye on
                          Henry when I am sewing. I still make all the children’s clothes and my own. Life is
                          pleasant but dull. George promises that he will take the whole family on safari when
                          Henry is a little older.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 18th July 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          Life drifts quietly by at Lyamungu with each day much like the one before – or
                          they would be, except that the children provide the sort of excitement that prohibits
                          boredom. Of the three boys our Jim is the best at this. Last week Jim wandered into the
                          coffee plantation beside our house and chewed some newly spayed berries. Result?
                          A high temperature and nasty, bloody diarrhoea, so we had to rush him to the hospital at
                          Moshi for treatment. however he was well again next day and George went off on safari.
                          That night there was another crisis. As the nights are now very cold, at this high
                          altitude, we have a large fire lit in the living room and the boy leaves a pile of logs
                          beside the hearth so that I can replenish the fire when necessary. Well that night I took
                          Henry off to bed, leaving John and Jim playing in the living room. When their bedtime
                          came, I called them without leaving the bedroom. When I had tucked John and Jim into
                          bed, I sat reading a bedtime story as I always do. Suddenly I saw smoke drifting
                          through the door, and heard a frightening rumbling noise. Japhet rushed in to say that the
                          lounge chimney was on fire! Picture me, panic on the inside and sweet smile on the
                          outside, as I picked Henry up and said to the other two, “There’s nothing to be
                          frightened about chaps, but get up and come outside for a bit.” Stupid of me to be so
                          heroic because John and Jim were not at all scared but only too delighted at the chance
                          of rushing about outside in the dark. The fire to them was just a bit of extra fun.

                          We hurried out to find one boy already on the roof and the other passing up a
                          brimming bucket of water. Other boys appeared from nowhere and soon cascades of
                          water were pouring down the chimney. The result was a mountain of smouldering soot
                          on the hearth and a pool of black water on the living room floor. However the fire was out
                          and no serious harm done because all the floors here are cement and another stain on
                          the old rug will hardly be noticed. As the children reluctantly returned to bed John
                          remarked smugly, “I told Jim not to put all the wood on the fire at once but he wouldn’t
                          listen.” I might have guessed!

                          However it was not Jim but John who gave me the worst turn of all this week. As
                          a treat I decided to take the boys to the river for a picnic tea. The river is not far from our
                          house but we had never been there before so I took the kitchen boy, Tovelo, to show
                          us the way. The path is on the level until one is in sight of the river when the bank slopes
                          steeply down. I decided that it was too steep for the pram so I stopped to lift Henry out
                          and carry him. When I looked around I saw John running down the slope towards the
                          river. The stream is not wide but flows swiftly and I had no idea how deep it was. All I
                          knew was that it was a trout stream. I called for John, “Stop, wait for me!” but he ran on
                          and made for a rude pole bridge which spanned the river. He started to cross and then,
                          to my horror, I saw John slip. There was a splash and he disappeared under the water. I
                          just dumped the baby on the ground, screamed to the boy to mind him and ran madly
                          down the slope to the river. Suddenly I saw John’s tight fitting felt hat emerge, then his
                          eyes and nose. I dashed into the water and found, to my intense relief, that it only
                          reached up to my shoulders but, thank heaven no further. John’s steady eyes watched
                          me trustingly as I approached him and carried him safely to the bank. He had been
                          standing on a rock and had not panicked at all though he had to stand up very straight
                          and tall to keep his nose out of water. I was too proud of him to scold him for
                          disobedience and too wet anyway.

                          I made John undress and put on two spare pullovers and wrapped Henry’s
                          baby blanket round his waist like a sarong. We made a small fire over which I crouched
                          with literally chattering teeth whilst Tovelo ran home to fetch a coat for me and dry clothes
                          for John.

                          Eleanor.

                          Lyamungu 16th August 1944

                          Dearest Family,

                          We have a new bull terrier bitch pup whom we have named Fanny III . So once
                          more we have a menagerie , the two dogs, two cats Susie and Winnie, and
                          some pet hens who live in the garage and are a real nuisance.

                          As John is nearly six I thought it time that he started lessons and wrote off to Dar
                          es Salaam for the correspondence course. We have had one week of lessons and I am
                          already in a state of physical and mental exhaustion. John is a most reluctant scholar.
                          “Why should I learn to read, when you can read to me?” he asks, and “Anyway why
                          should I read such stupid stuff, ‘Run Rover Run’, and ‘Mother play with baby’ . Who
                          wants to read about things like that? I don’t.”

                          He rather likes sums, but the only subject about which he is enthusiastic is
                          prehistoric history. He laps up information about ‘The Tree Dwellers’, though he is very
                          sceptical about the existence of such people. “God couldn’t be so silly to make people
                          so stupid. Fancy living in trees when it is easy to make huts like the natives.” ‘The Tree
                          Dwellers is a highly imaginative story about a revolting female called Sharptooth and her
                          offspring called Bodo. I have a very clear mental image of Sharptooth, so it came as a
                          shock to me and highly amused George when John looked at me reflectively across the
                          tea table and said, “Mummy I expect Sharptooth looked like you. You have a sharp
                          tooth too!” I have, my eye teeth are rather sharp, but I hope the resemblance stops
                          there.

                          John has an uncomfortably logical mind for a small boy. The other day he was
                          lying on the lawn staring up at the clouds when he suddenly muttered “I don’t believe it.”
                          “Believe what?” I asked. “That Jesus is coming on a cloud one day. How can he? The
                          thick ones always stay high up. What’s he going to do, jump down with a parachute?”
                          Tovelo, my kitchen boy, announced one evening that his grandmother was in the
                          kitchen and wished to see me. She was a handsome and sensible Chagga woman who
                          brought sad news. Her little granddaughter had stumbled backwards into a large cooking
                          pot of almost boiling maize meal porridge and was ‘ngongwa sana’ (very ill). I grabbed
                          a large bottle of Picric Acid and a packet of gauze which we keep for these emergencies
                          and went with her, through coffee shambas and banana groves to her daughter’s house.
                          Inside the very neat thatched hut the mother sat with the naked child lying face
                          downwards on her knee. The child’s buttocks and the back of her legs were covered in
                          huge burst blisters from which a watery pus dripped. It appeared that the accident had
                          happened on the previous day.

                          I could see that it was absolutely necessary to clean up the damaged area, and I
                          suddenly remembered that there was a trained African hospital dresser on the station. I
                          sent the father to fetch him and whilst the dresser cleaned off the sloughed skin with
                          forceps and swabs saturated in Picric Acid, I cut the gauze into small squares which I
                          soaked in the lotion and laid on the cleaned area. I thought the small pieces would be
                          easier to change especially as the whole of the most tender parts, front and back, were
                          badly scalded. The child seemed dazed and neither the dresser nor I thought she would
                          live. I gave her half an aspirin and left three more half tablets to be given four hourly.
                          Next day she seemed much brighter. I poured more lotion on the gauze
                          disturbing as few pieces as possible and again the next day and the next. After a week
                          the skin was healing well and the child eating normally. I am sure she will be all right now.
                          The new skin is a brilliant red and very shiny but it is pale round the edges of the burnt
                          area and will I hope later turn brown. The mother never uttered a word of thanks, but the
                          granny is grateful and today brought the children a bunch of bananas.

                          Eleanor.

                          c/o Game Dept. P.O.Moshi. 29th September 1944

                          Dearest Mummy,

                          I am so glad that you so enjoyed my last letter with the description of our very
                          interesting and enjoyable safari through Masailand. You said you would like an even
                          fuller description of it to pass around amongst the relations, so, to please you, I have
                          written it out in detail and enclose the result.

                          We have spent a quiet week after our exertions and all are well here.

                          Very much love,
                          Eleanor.

                          Safari in Masailand

                          George and I were at tea with our three little boys on the front lawn of our house
                          in Lyamungu, Northern Tanganyika. It was John’s sixth birthday and he and Jim, a
                          happy sturdy three year old, and Henry, aged eleven months, were munching the
                          squares of plain chocolate which rounded off the party, when George said casually
                          across the table to me, “Could you be ready by the day after tomorrow to go on
                          safari?” “Me too?” enquired John anxiously, before I had time to reply, and “Me too?”
                          echoed Jim. “yes, of course I can”, said I to George and “of course you’re coming too”,
                          to the children who rate a day spent in the bush higher than any other pleasure.
                          So in the early morning two days later, we started out happily for Masailand in a
                          three ton Ford lorry loaded to capacity with the five Rushbys, the safari paraphernalia,
                          drums of petrol and quite a retinue of servants and Game Scouts. George travelling
                          alone on his monthly safaris, takes only the cook and a couple of Game Scouts, but this was to be a safari de luxe.

                          Henry and I shared the cab with George who was driving, whilst John and Jim
                          with the faithful orderly Mabemba beside them to point out the game animals, were
                          installed upon rolls of bedding in the body of the lorry. The lorry lumbered along, first
                          through coffee shambas, and then along the main road between Moshi and Arusha.
                          After half an hour or so, we turned South off the road into a track which crossed the
                          Sanya Plains and is the beginning of this part of Masailand. Though the dry season was
                          at its height, and the pasture dry and course, we were soon passing small groups of
                          game. This area is a Game Sanctuary and the antelope grazed quietly quite undisturbed
                          by the passing lorry. Here and there zebra stood bunched by the road, a few wild
                          ostriches stalked jerkily by, and in the distance some wildebeest cavorted around in their
                          crazy way.

                          Soon the grasslands gave way to thorn bush, and we saw six fantastically tall
                          giraffe standing motionless with their heads turned enquiringly towards us. George
                          stopped the lorry so the children could have a good view of them. John was enchanted
                          but Jim, alas, was asleep.

                          At mid day we reached the Kikoletwa River and turned aside to camp. Beside
                          the river, under huge leafy trees, there was a beautiful camping spot, but the river was
                          deep and reputed to be full of crocodiles so we passed it by and made our camp
                          some distance from the river under a tall thorn tree with a flat lacy canopy. All around the
                          camp lay uprooted trees of similar size that had been pushed over by elephants. As
                          soon as the lorry stopped a camp chair was set up for me and the Game Scouts quickly
                          slashed down grass and cleared the camp site of thorns. The same boys then pitched the tent whilst George himself set up the three camp beds and the folding cot for Henry,
                          and set up the safari table and the canvas wash bowl and bath.

                          The cook in the meantime had cleared a cool spot for the kitchen , opened up the
                          chop boxes and started a fire. The cook’s boy and the dhobi (laundry boy) brought
                          water from the rather muddy river and tea was served followed shortly afterward by an
                          excellent lunch. In a very short time the camp had a suprisingly homely look. Nappies
                          fluttered from a clothes line, Henry slept peacefully in his cot, John and Jim sprawled on
                          one bed looking at comics, and I dozed comfortably on another.

                          George, with the Game Scouts, drove off in the lorry about his work. As a Game
                          Ranger it is his business to be on a constant look out for poachers, both African and
                          European, and for disease in game which might infect the valuable herds of Masai cattle.
                          The lorry did not return until dusk by which time the children had bathed enthusiastically in
                          the canvas bath and were ready for supper and bed. George backed the lorry at right
                          angles to the tent, Henry’s cot and two camp beds were set up in the lorry, the tarpaulin
                          was lashed down and the children put to bed in their novel nursery.

                          When darkness fell a large fire was lit in front of the camp, the exited children at
                          last fell asleep and George and I sat on by the fire enjoying the cool and quiet night.
                          When the fire subsided into a bed of glowing coals, it was time for our bed. During the
                          night I was awakened by the sound of breaking branches and strange indescribable
                          noises.” Just elephant”, said George comfortably and instantly fell asleep once more. I
                          didn’t! We rose with the birds next morning, but breakfast was ready and in a
                          remarkably short time the lorry had been reloaded and we were once more on our way.
                          For about half a mile we made our own track across the plain and then we turned
                          into the earth road once more. Soon we had reached the river and were looking with
                          dismay at the suspension bridge which we had to cross. At the far side, one steel
                          hawser was missing and there the bridge tilted dangerously. There was no handrail but
                          only heavy wooden posts which marked the extremities of the bridge. WhenGeorge
                          measured the distance between the posts he found that there could be barely two
                          inches to spare on either side of the cumbersome lorry.

                          He decided to risk crossing, but the children and I and all the servants were told to
                          cross the bridge and go down the track out of sight. The Game Scouts remained on the
                          river bank on the far side of the bridge and stood ready for emergencies. As I walked
                          along anxiously listening, I was horrified to hear the lorry come to a stop on the bridge.
                          There was a loud creaking noise and I instantly visualised the lorry slowly toppling over
                          into the deep crocodile infested river. The engine restarted, the lorry crossed the bridge
                          and came slowly into sight around the bend. My heart slid back into its normal position.
                          George was as imperturbable as ever and simply remarked that it had been a near
                          thing and that we would return to Lyamungu by another route.

                          Beyond the green river belt the very rutted track ran through very uninteresting
                          thorn bush country. Henry was bored and tiresome, jumping up and down on my knee
                          and yelling furiously. “Teeth”, said I apologetically to George, rashly handing a match
                          box to Henry to keep him quiet. No use at all! With a fat finger he poked out the tray
                          spilling the matches all over me and the floor. Within seconds Henry had torn the
                          matchbox to pieces with his teeth and flung the battered remains through the window.
                          An empty cigarette box met with the same fate as the match box and the yells
                          continued unabated until Henry slept from sheer exhaustion. George gave me a smile,
                          half sympathetic and half sardonic, “Enjoying the safari, my love?” he enquired. On these
                          trying occasions George has the inestimable advantage of being able to go into a Yogilike
                          trance, whereas I become irritated to screaming point.

                          In an effort to prolong Henry’s slumber I braced my feet against the floor boards
                          and tried to turn myself into a human shock absorber as we lurched along the eroded
                          track. Several times my head made contact with the bolt of a rifle in the rack above, and
                          once I felt I had shattered my knee cap against the fire extinguisher in a bracket under the
                          dash board.

                          Strange as it may seem, I really was enjoying the trip in spite of these
                          discomforts. At last after three years I was once more on safari with George. This type of
                          country was new to me and there was so much to see We passed a family of giraffe
                          standing in complete immobility only a few yards from the track. Little dick-dick. one of the smallest of the antelope, scuttled in pairs across the road and that afternoon I had my first view of Gerenuk, curious red brown antelope with extremely elongated legs and giraffe-like necks.

                          Most interesting of all was my first sight of Masai at home. We could hear a tuneful
                          jangle of cattle bells and suddenly came across herds of humped cattle browsing upon
                          the thorn bushes. The herds were guarded by athletic,striking looking Masai youths and men.
                          Each had a calabash of water slung over his shoulder and a tall, highly polished spear in his
                          hand. These herdsmen were quite unselfconscious though they wore no clothing except for one carelessly draped blanket. Very few gave us any greeting but glanced indifferently at us from under fringes of clay-daubed plaited hair . The rest of their hair was drawn back behind the ears to display split earlobes stretched into slender loops by the weight of heavy brass or copper tribal ear rings.

                          Most of the villages were set well back in the bush out of sight of the road but we did pass one
                          typical village which looked most primitive indeed. It consisted simply of a few mound like mud huts which were entirely covered with a plaster of mud and cattle dung and the whole clutch of huts were surrounded by a ‘boma’ of thorn to keep the cattle in at night and the lions out. There was a gathering of women and children on the road at this point. The children of both sexes were naked and unadorned, but the women looked very fine indeed. This is not surprising for they have little to do but adorn themselves, unlike their counterparts of other tribes who have to work hard cultivating the fields. The Masai women, and others I saw on safari, were far more amiable and cheerful looking than the men and were well proportioned.

                          They wore skirts of dressed goat skin, knee length in front but ankle length behind. Their arms
                          from elbow to wrist, and legs from knee to ankle, were encased in tight coils of copper and
                          galvanised wire. All had their heads shaved and in some cases bound by a leather band
                          embroidered in red white and blue beads. Circular ear rings hung from slit earlobes and their
                          handsome throats were encircled by stiff wire necklaces strung with brightly coloured beads. These
                          necklaces were carefully graded in size and formed deep collars almost covering their breasts.
                          About a quarter of a mile further along the road we met eleven young braves in gala attire, obviously on their way to call on the girls. They formed a line across the road and danced up and down until the lorry was dangerously near when they parted and grinned cheerfully at us. These were the only cheerful
                          looking male Masai that I saw. Like the herdsmen these youths wore only a blanket, but their
                          blankets were ochre colour, and elegantly draped over their backs. Their naked bodies gleamed with oil. Several had painted white stripes on their faces, and two had whitewashed their faces entirely which I
                          thought a pity. All had their long hair elaborately dressed and some carried not only one,
                          but two gleaming spears.

                          By mid day George decided that we had driven far enough for that day. He
                          stopped the lorry and consulted a rather unreliable map. “Somewhere near here is a
                          place called Lolbeni,” he said. “The name means Sweet Water, I hear that the
                          government have piped spring water down from the mountain into a small dam at which
                          the Masai water their cattle.” Lolbeni sounded pleasant to me. Henry was dusty and
                          cross, the rubber sheet had long slipped from my lap to the floor and I was conscious of
                          a very damp lap. ‘Sweet Waters’ I felt, would put all that right. A few hundred yards
                          away a small herd of cattle was grazing, so George lit his pipe and relaxed at last, whilst
                          a Game Scout went off to find the herdsman. The scout soon returned with an ancient
                          and emaciated Masai who was thrilled at the prospect of his first ride in a lorry and
                          offered to direct us to Lolbeni which was off the main track and about four miles away.

                          Once Lolbeni had been a small administrative post and a good track had
                          led to it, but now the Post had been abandoned and the road is dotted with vigourous
                          thorn bushes and the branches of larger thorn trees encroach on the track The road had
                          deteriorated to a mere cattle track, deeply rutted and eroded by heavy rains over a
                          period of years. The great Ford truck, however, could take it. It lurched victoriously along,
                          mowing down the obstructions, tearing off branches from encroaching thorn trees with its
                          high railed sides, spanning gorges in the track, and climbing in and out of those too wide
                          to span. I felt an army tank could not have done better.

                          I had expected Lolbeni to be a green oasis in a desert of grey thorns, but I was
                          quickly disillusioned. To be sure the thorn trees were larger and more widely spaced and
                          provided welcome shade, but the ground under the trees had been trampled by thousands of cattle into a dreary expanse of dirty grey sand liberally dotted with cattle droppings and made still more uninviting by the bleached bones of dead beasts.

                          To the right of this waste rose a high green hill which gave the place its name and from which
                          the precious water was piped, but its slopes were too steep to provide a camping site.
                          Flies swarmed everywhere and I was most relieved when George said that we would
                          stay only long enough to fill our cans with water. Even the water was a disappointment!
                          The water in the small dam was low and covered by a revolting green scum, and though
                          the water in the feeding pipe was sweet, it trickled so feebly that it took simply ages to
                          fill a four gallon can.

                          However all these disappointments were soon forgotten for we drove away
                          from the flies and dirt and trampled sand and soon, with their quiet efficiency, George
                          and his men set up a comfortable camp. John and Jim immediately started digging
                          operations in the sandy soil whilst Henry and I rested. After tea George took his shot
                          gun and went off to shoot guinea fowl and partridges for the pot. The children and I went
                          walking, keeping well in site of camp, and soon we saw a very large flock of Vulturine
                          Guineafowl, running aimlessly about and looking as tame as barnyard fowls, but melting
                          away as soon as we moved in their direction.

                          We had our second quiet and lovely evening by the camp fire, followed by a
                          peaceful night.

                          We left Lolbeni very early next morning, which was a good thing, for as we left
                          camp the herds of thirsty cattle moved in from all directions. They were accompanied by
                          Masai herdsmen, their naked bodies and blankets now covered by volcanic dust which
                          was being stirred in rising clouds of stifling ash by the milling cattle, and also by grey
                          donkeys laden with panniers filled with corked calabashes for water.

                          Our next stop was Nabarera, a Masai cattle market and trading centre, where we
                          reluctantly stayed for two days in a pokey Goverment Resthouse because George had
                          a job to do in that area. The rest was good for Henry who promptly produced a tooth
                          and was consequently much better behaved for the rest of the trip. George was away in the bush most of the day but he returned for afternoon tea and later took the children out
                          walking. We had noticed curious white dumps about a quarter mile from the resthouse
                          and on the second afternoon we set out to investigate them. Behind the dumps we
                          found passages about six foot wide, cut through solid limestone. We explored two of
                          these and found that both passages led steeply down to circular wells about two and a
                          half feet in diameter.

                          At the very foot of each passage, beside each well, rough drinking troughs had
                          been cut in the stone. The herdsmen haul the water out of the well in home made hide
                          buckets, the troughs are filled and the cattle driven down the ramps to drink at the trough.
                          It was obvious that the wells were ancient and the sloping passages new. George tells
                          me that no one knows what ancient race dug the original wells. It seems incredible that
                          these deep and narrow shafts could have been sunk without machinery. I craned my
                          neck and looked above one well and could see an immensely long shaft reaching up to
                          ground level. Small footholds were cut in the solid rock as far as I could see.
                          It seems that the Masai are as ignorant as ourselves about the origin of these
                          wells. They do say however that when their forebears first occupied what is now known
                          as Masailand, they not only found the Wanderobo tribe in the area but also a light
                          skinned people and they think it possible that these light skinned people dug the wells.
                          These people disappeared. They may have been absorbed or, more likely, they were
                          liquidated.

                          The Masai had found the well impractical in their original form and had hired
                          labourers from neighbouring tribes to cut the passages to water level. Certainly the Masai are not responsible for the wells. They are a purely pastoral people and consider manual labour extremely degrading.

                          They live chiefly on milk from their herd which they allow to go sour, and mix with blood that has been skilfully tapped from the necks of living cattle. They do not eat game meat, nor do they cultivate any
                          land. They hunt with spears, but hunt only lions, to protect their herds, and to test the skill
                          and bravery of their young warriors. What little grain they do eat is transported into
                          Masailand by traders. The next stage of our journey took us to Ngassamet where
                          George was to pick up some elephant tusks. I had looked forward particularly to this
                          stretch of road for I had heard that there was a shallow lake at which game congregates,
                          and at which I had great hopes of seeing elephants. We had come too late in the
                          season though, the lake was dry and there were only piles of elephant droppings to
                          prove that elephant had recently been there in numbers. Ngassamet, though no beauty
                          spot, was interesting. We saw more elaborate editions of the wells already described, and as this area
                          is rich in cattle we saw the aristocrats of the Masai. You cannot conceive of a more arrogant looking male than a young Masai brave striding by on sandalled feet, unselfconscious in all his glory. All the young men wore the casually draped traditional ochre blanket and carried one or more spears. But here belts and long knife sheaths of scarlet leather seem to be the fashion. Here fringes do not seem to be the thing. Most of these young Masai had their hair drawn smoothly back and twisted in a pointed queue, the whole plastered with a smooth coating of red clay. Some tied their horn shaped queues over their heads
                          so that the tip formed a deep Satanic peak on the brow. All these young men wore the traditional
                          copper earrings and I saw one or two with copper bracelets and one with a necklace of brightly coloured
                          beads.

                          It so happened that, on the day of our visit to Ngassamet, there had been a
                          baraza (meeting) which was attended by all the local headmen and elders. These old
                          men came to pay their respects to George and a more shrewd and rascally looking
                          company I have never seen, George told me that some of these men own up to three
                          thousand head of cattle and more. The chief was as fat and Rabelasian as his second in
                          command was emaciated, bucktoothed and prim. The Chief shook hands with George
                          and greeted me and settled himself on the wall of the resthouse porch opposite
                          George. The lesser headmen, after politely greeting us, grouped themselves in a
                          semi circle below the steps with their ‘aides’ respectfully standing behind them. I
                          remained sitting in the only chair and watched the proceedings with interest and
                          amusement.

                          These old Masai, I noticed, cared nothing for adornment. They had proved
                          themselves as warriors in the past and were known to be wealthy and influential so did
                          not need to make any display. Most of them had their heads comfortably shaved and
                          wore only a drab blanket or goatskin cloak. Their only ornaments were earrings whose
                          effect was somewhat marred by the serviceable and homely large safety pin that
                          dangled from the lobe of one ear. All carried staves instead of spears and all, except for
                          Buckteeth and one blind old skeleton of a man, appeared to have a keenly developed
                          sense of humour.

                          “Mummy?” asked John in an urgent whisper, “Is that old blind man nearly dead?”
                          “Yes dear”, said I, “I expect he’ll soon die.” “What here?” breathed John in a tone of
                          keen anticipation and, until the meeting broke up and the old man left, he had John’s
                          undivided attention.

                          After local news and the game situation had been discussed, the talk turned to the
                          war. “When will the war end?” moaned the fat Chief. “We have made great gifts of cattle
                          to the War Funds, we are taxed out of existence.” George replied with the Ki-Swahili
                          equivalent of ‘Sez you!’. This sally was received with laughter and the old fellows rose to
                          go. They made their farewells and dignified exits, pausing on their way to stare at our
                          pink and white Henry, who sat undismayed in his push chair giving them stare for stare
                          from his striking grey eyes.

                          Towards evening some Masai, prompted no doubt by our native servants,
                          brought a sheep for sale. It was the last night of the fast of Ramadan and our
                          Mohammedan boys hoped to feast next day at our expense. Their faces fell when
                          George refused to buy the animal. “Why should I pay fifteen shillings for a sheep?” he
                          asked, “Am I not the Bwana Nyama and is not the bush full of my sheep?” (Bwana
                          Nyama is the native name for a Game Ranger, but means literally, ‘Master of the meat’)
                          George meant that he would shoot a buck for the men next day, but this incident was to
                          have a strange sequel. Ngassamet resthouse consists of one room so small we could
                          not put up all our camp beds and George and I slept on the cement floor which was
                          unkind to my curves. The night was bitterly cold and all night long hyaenas screeched
                          hideously outside. So we rose at dawn without reluctance and were on our way before it
                          was properly light.

                          George had decided that it would be foolhardy to return home by our outward
                          route as he did not care to risk another crossing of the suspension bridge. So we
                          returned to Nabarera and there turned onto a little used track which would eventually take
                          us to the Great North Road a few miles South of Arusha. There was not much game
                          about but I saw Oryx which I had not previously seen. Soon it grew intolerably hot and I
                          think all of us but George were dozing when he suddenly stopped the lorry and pointed
                          to the right. “Mpishi”, he called to the cook, “There’s your sheep!” True enough, on that
                          dreary thorn covered plain,with not another living thing in sight, stood a fat black sheep.

                          There was an incredulous babbling from the back of the lorry. Every native
                          jumped to the ground and in no time at all the wretched sheep was caught and
                          slaughtered. I felt sick. “Oh George”, I wailed, “The poor lost sheep! I shan’t eat a scrap
                          of it.” George said nothing but went and had a look at the sheep and called out to me,
                          “Come and look at it. It was kindness to kill the poor thing, the vultures have been at it
                          already and the hyaenas would have got it tonight.” I went reluctantly and saw one eye
                          horribly torn out, and small deep wounds on the sheep’s back where the beaks of the
                          vultures had cut through the heavy fleece. Poor thing! I went back to the lorry more
                          determined than ever not to eat mutton on that trip. The Scouts and servants had no
                          such scruples. The fine fat sheep had been sent by Allah for their feast day and that was
                          the end of it.

                          “ ‘Mpishi’ is more convinced than ever that I am a wizard”, said George in
                          amusement as he started the lorry. I knew what he meant. Several times before George
                          had foretold something which had later happened. Pure coincidence, but strange enough
                          to give rise to a legend that George had the power to arrange things. “What happened
                          of course”, explained George, “Is that a flock of Masai sheep was driven to market along
                          this track yesterday or the day before. This one strayed and was not missed.”

                          The day grew hotter and hotter and for long miles we looked out for a camping
                          spot but could find little shade and no trace of water anywhere. At last, in the early
                          afternoon we reached another pokey little rest house and asked for water. “There is no
                          water here,” said the native caretaker. “Early in the morning there is water in a well nearby
                          but we are allowed only one kerosene tin full and by ten o’clock the well is dry.” I looked
                          at George in dismay for we were all so tired and dusty. “Where do the Masai from the
                          village water their cattle then?” asked George. “About two miles away through the bush.
                          If you take me with you I shall show you”, replied the native.

                          So we turned off into the bush and followed a cattle track even more tortuous than
                          the one to Lolbeni. Two Scouts walked ahead to warn us of hazards and I stretched my
                          arm across the open window to fend off thorns. Henry screamed with fright and hunger.
                          But George’s efforts to reach water went unrewarded as we were brought to a stop by
                          a deep donga. The native from the resthouse was apologetic. He had mistaken the
                          path, perhaps if we turned back we might find it. George was beyond speech. We
                          lurched back the way we had come and made our camp under the first large tree we
                          could find. Then off went our camp boys on foot to return just before dark with the water.
                          However they were cheerful for there was an unlimited quantity of dry wood for their fires
                          and meat in plenty for their feast. Long after George and I left our campfire and had gone
                          to bed, we could see the cheerful fires of the boys and hear their chatter and laughter.
                          I woke in the small hours to hear the insane cackling of hyaenas gloating over a
                          find. Later I heard scuffling around the camp table, I peered over the tailboard of the lorry
                          and saw George come out of his tent. What are you doing?” I whispered. “Looking for
                          something to throw at those bloody hyaenas,” answered George for all the world as
                          though those big brutes were tomcats on the prowl. Though the hyaenas kept up their
                          concert all night the children never stirred, nor did any of them wake at night throughout
                          the safari.

                          Early next morning I walked across to the camp kitchen to enquire into the loud
                          lamentations coming from that quarter. “Oh Memsahib”, moaned the cook, “We could
                          not sleep last night for the bad hyaenas round our tents. They have taken every scrap of
                          meat we had left over from the feast., even the meat we had left to smoke over the fire.”
                          Jim, who of our three young sons is the cook’s favourite commiserated with him. He said
                          in Ki-Swahili, which he speaks with great fluency, “Truly those hyaenas are very bad
                          creatures. They also robbed us. They have taken my hat from the table and eaten the
                          new soap from the washbowl.

                          Our last day in the bush was a pleasantly lazy one. We drove through country
                          that grew more open and less dry as we approached Arusha. We pitched our camp
                          near a large dam, and the water was a blessed sight after a week of scorched country.
                          On the plains to the right of our camp was a vast herd of native cattle enjoying a brief
                          rest after their long day trek through Masailand. They were destined to walk many more
                          weary miles before reaching their destination, a meat canning factory in Kenya.
                          The ground to the left of the camp rose gently to form a long low hill and on the
                          grassy slopes we could see wild ostriches and herds of wildebeest, zebra and
                          antelope grazing amicably side by side. In the late afternoon I watched the groups of
                          zebra and wildebeest merge into one. Then with a wildebeest leading, they walked
                          down the slope in single file to drink at the vlei . When they were satisfied, a wildebeest
                          once more led the herd up the trail. The others followed in a long and orderly file, and
                          vanished over the hill to their evening pasture.

                          When they had gone, George took up his shotgun and invited John to
                          accompany him to the dam to shoot duck. This was the first time John had acted as
                          retriever but he did very well and proudly helped to carry a mixed bag of sand grouse
                          and duck back to camp.

                          Next morning we turned into the Great North Road and passed first through
                          carefully tended coffee shambas and then through the township of Arusha, nestling at
                          the foot of towering Mount Meru. Beyond Arusha we drove through the Usa River
                          settlement where again coffee shambas and European homesteads line the road, and
                          saw before us the magnificent spectacle of Kilimanjaro unveiled, its white snow cap
                          gleaming in the sunlight. Before mid day we were home. “Well was it worth it?” enquired
                          George at lunch. “Lovely,” I replied. ”Let’s go again soon.” Then thinking regretfully of
                          our absent children I sighed, “If only Ann, George, and Kate could have gone with us
                          too.”

                          Lyamungu 10th November. 1944

                          Dearest Family.

                          Mummy wants to know how I fill in my time with George away on safari for weeks
                          on end. I do believe that you all picture me idling away my days, waited on hand and
                          foot by efficient servants! On the contrary, life is one rush and the days never long
                          enough.

                          To begin with, our servants are anything but efficient, apart from our cook, Hamisi
                          Issa, who really is competent. He suffers from frustration because our budget will not run
                          to elaborate dishes so there is little scope for his culinary art. There is one masterpiece
                          which is much appreciated by John and Jim. Hamisi makes a most realistic crocodile out
                          of pastry and stuffs its innards with minced meat. This revolting reptile is served on a
                          bed of parsley on my largest meat dish. The cook is a strict Mohammedan and
                          observes all the fasts and daily prayers and, like all Mohammedans he is very clean in
                          his person and, thank goodness, in the kitchen.

                          His wife is his pride and joy but not his helpmate. She does absolutely nothing
                          but sit in a chair in the sun all day, sipping tea and smoking cigarettes – a more
                          expensive brand than mine! It is Hamisi who sweeps out their quarters, cooks
                          delectable curries for her, and spends more than he can afford on clothing and trinkets for
                          his wife. She just sits there with her ‘Mona Lisa’ smile and her painted finger and toe
                          nails, doing absolutely nothing.

                          The thing is that natives despise women who do work and this applies especially
                          to their white employers. House servants much prefer a Memsahib who leaves
                          everything to them and is careless about locking up her pantry. When we first came to
                          Lyamungu I had great difficulty in employing a houseboy. A couple of rather efficient
                          ones did approach me but when they heard the wages I was prepared to pay and that
                          there was no number 2 boy, they simply were not interested. Eventually I took on a
                          local boy called Japhet who suits me very well except that his sight is not good and he
                          is extremely hard on the crockery. He tells me that he has lost face by working here
                          because his friends say that he works for a family that is too mean to employ a second
                          boy. I explained that with our large family we simply cannot afford to pay more, but this
                          didn’t register at all. Japhet says “But Wazungu (Europeans) all have money. They just
                          have to get it from the Bank.”

                          The third member of our staff is a strapping youth named Tovelo who helps both
                          cook and boy, and consequently works harder than either. What do I do? I chivvy the
                          servants, look after the children, supervise John’s lessons, and make all my clothing and
                          the children’s on that blessed old hand sewing machine.

                          The folk on this station entertain a good deal but we usually decline invitations
                          because we simply cannot afford to reciprocate. However, last Saturday night I invited
                          two couples to drinks and dinner. This was such an unusual event that the servants and I
                          were thrown into a flurry. In the end the dinner went off well though it ended in disaster. In
                          spite of my entreaties and exhortations to Japhet not to pile everything onto the tray at
                          once when clearing the table, he did just that. We were starting our desert and I was
                          congratulating myself that all had gone well when there was a frightful crash of breaking
                          china on the back verandah. I excused myself and got up to investigate. A large meat
                          dish, six dinner plates and four vegetable dishes lay shattered on the cement floor! I
                          controlled my tongue but what my eyes said to Japhet is another matter. What he said
                          was, “It is not my fault Memsahib. The handle of the tray came off.”

                          It is a curious thing about native servants that they never accept responsibility for
                          a mishap. If they cannot pin their misdeeds onto one of their fellow servants then the responsibility rests with God. ‘Shauri ya Mungu’, (an act of God) is a familiar cry. Fatalists
                          can be very exasperating employees.

                          The loss of my dinner service is a real tragedy because, being war time, one can
                          buy only china of the poorest quality made for the native trade. Nor was that the final
                          disaster of the evening. When we moved to the lounge for coffee I noticed that the
                          coffee had been served in the battered old safari coffee pot instead of the charming little
                          antique coffee pot which my Mother-in-law had sent for our tenth wedding anniversary.
                          As there had already been a disturbance I made no comment but resolved to give the
                          cook a piece of my mind in the morning. My instructions to the cook had been to warm
                          the coffee pot with hot water immediately before serving. On no account was he to put
                          the pewter pot on the hot iron stove. He did and the result was a small hole in the base
                          of the pot – or so he says. When I saw the pot next morning there was a two inch hole in
                          it.

                          Hamisi explained placidly how this had come about. He said he knew I would be
                          mad when I saw the little hole so he thought he would have it mended and I might not
                          notice it. Early in the morning he had taken the pewter pot to the mechanic who looks
                          after the Game Department vehicles and had asked him to repair it. The bright individual
                          got busy with the soldering iron with the most devastating result. “It’s his fault,” said
                          Hamisi, “He is a mechanic, he should have known what would happen.”
                          One thing is certain, there will be no more dinner parties in this house until the war
                          is ended.

                          The children are well and so am I, and so was George when he left on his safari
                          last Monday.

                          Much love,
                          Eleanor.

                           

                          #6266
                          TracyTracy
                          Participant

                            From Tanganyika with Love

                            continued part 7

                            With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                            Oldeani Hospital. 19th September 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            George arrived today to take us home to Mbulu but Sister Marianne will not allow
                            me to travel for another week as I had a bit of a set back after baby’s birth. At first I was
                            very fit and on the third day Sister stripped the bed and, dictionary in hand, started me
                            off on ante natal exercises. “Now make a bridge Mrs Rushby. So. Up down, up down,’
                            whilst I obediently hoisted myself aloft on heels and head. By the sixth day she
                            considered it was time for me to be up and about but alas, I soon had to return to bed
                            with a temperature and a haemorrhage. I got up and walked outside for the first time this
                            morning.

                            I have had lots of visitors because the local German settlers seem keen to see
                            the first British baby born in the hospital. They have been most kind, sending flowers
                            and little German cards of congratulations festooned with cherubs and rather sweet. Most
                            of the women, besides being pleasant, are very smart indeed, shattering my illusion that
                            German matrons are invariably fat and dowdy. They are all much concerned about the
                            Czecko-Slovakian situation, especially Sister Marianne whose home is right on the
                            border and has several relations who are Sudentan Germans. She is ant-Nazi and
                            keeps on asking me whether I think England will declare war if Hitler invades Czecko-
                            Slovakia, as though I had inside information.

                            George tells me that he has had a grass ‘banda’ put up for us at Mbulu as we are
                            both determined not to return to those prison-like quarters in the Fort. Sister Marianne is
                            horrified at the idea of taking a new baby to live in a grass hut. She told George,
                            “No,No,Mr Rushby. I find that is not to be allowed!” She is an excellent Sister but rather
                            prim and George enjoys teasing her. This morning he asked with mock seriousness,
                            “Sister, why has my wife not received her medal?” Sister fluttered her dictionary before
                            asking. “What medal Mr Rushby”. “Why,” said George, “The medal that Hitler gives to
                            women who have borne four children.” Sister started a long and involved explanation
                            about the medal being only for German mothers whilst George looked at me and
                            grinned.

                            Later. Great Jubilation here. By the noise in Sister Marianne’s sitting room last night it
                            sounded as though the whole German population had gathered to listen to the wireless
                            news. I heard loud exclamations of joy and then my bedroom door burst open and
                            several women rushed in. “Thank God “, they cried, “for Neville Chamberlain. Now there
                            will be no war.” They pumped me by the hand as though I were personally responsible
                            for the whole thing.

                            George on the other hand is disgusted by Chamberlain’s lack of guts. Doesn’t
                            know what England is coming to these days. I feel too content to concern myself with
                            world affairs. I have a fine husband and four wonderful children and am happy, happy,
                            happy.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mbulu. 30th September 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Here we are, comfortably installed in our little green house made of poles and
                            rushes from a nearby swamp. The house has of course, no doors or windows, but
                            there are rush blinds which roll up in the day time. There are two rooms and a little porch
                            and out at the back there is a small grass kitchen.

                            Here we have the privacy which we prize so highly as we are screened on one
                            side by a Forest Department plantation and on the other three sides there is nothing but
                            the rolling countryside cropped bare by the far too large herds of cattle and goats of the
                            Wambulu. I have a lovely lazy time. I still have Kesho-Kutwa and the cook we brought
                            with us from the farm. They are both faithful and willing souls though not very good at
                            their respective jobs. As one of these Mbeya boys goes on safari with George whose
                            job takes him from home for three weeks out of four, I have taken on a local boy to cut
                            firewood and heat my bath water and generally make himself useful. His name is Saa,
                            which means ‘Clock’

                            We had an uneventful but very dusty trip from Oldeani. Johnny Jo travelled in his
                            pram in the back of the boxbody and got covered in dust but seems none the worst for
                            it. As the baby now takes up much of my time and Kate was showing signs of
                            boredom, I have engaged a little African girl to come and play with Kate every morning.
                            She is the daughter of the head police Askari and a very attractive and dignified little
                            person she is. Her name is Kajyah. She is scrupulously clean, as all Mohammedan
                            Africans seem to be. Alas, Kajyah, though beautiful, is a bore. She simply does not
                            know how to play, so they just wander around hand in hand.

                            There are only two drawbacks to this little house. Mbulu is a very windy spot so
                            our little reed house is very draughty. I have made a little tent of sheets in one corner of
                            the ‘bedroom’ into which I can retire with Johnny when I wish to bathe or sponge him.
                            The other drawback is that many insects are attracted at night by the lamp and make it
                            almost impossible to read or sew and they have a revolting habit of falling into the soup.
                            There are no dangerous wild animals in this area so I am not at all nervous in this
                            flimsy little house when George is on safari. Most nights hyaenas come around looking
                            for scraps but our dogs, Fanny and Paddy, soon see them off.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mbulu. 25th October 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Great news! a vacancy has occurred in the Game Department. George is to
                            transfer to it next month. There will be an increase in salary and a brighter prospect for
                            the future. It will mean a change of scene and I shall be glad of that. We like Mbulu and
                            the people here but the rains have started and our little reed hut is anything but water
                            tight.

                            Before the rain came we had very unpleasant dust storms. I think I told you that
                            this is a treeless area and the grass which normally covers the veldt has been cropped
                            to the roots by the hungry native cattle and goats. When the wind blows the dust
                            collects in tall black columns which sweep across the country in a most spectacular
                            fashion. One such dust devil struck our hut one day whilst we were at lunch. George
                            swept Kate up in a second and held her face against his chest whilst I rushed to Johnny
                            Jo who was asleep in his pram, and stooped over the pram to protect him. The hut
                            groaned and creaked and clouds of dust blew in through the windows and walls covering
                            our persons, food, and belongings in a black pall. The dogs food bowls and an empty
                            petrol tin outside the hut were whirled up and away. It was all over in a moment but you
                            should have seen what a family of sweeps we looked. George looked at our blackened
                            Johnny and mimicked in Sister Marianne’s primmest tones, “I find that this is not to be
                            allowed.”

                            The first rain storm caught me unprepared when George was away on safari. It
                            was a terrific thunderstorm. The quite violent thunder and lightening were followed by a
                            real tropical downpour. As the hut is on a slight slope, the storm water poured through
                            the hut like a river, covering the entire floor, and the roof leaked like a lawn sprinkler.
                            Johnny Jo was snug enough in the pram with the hood raised, but Kate and I had a
                            damp miserable night. Next morning I had deep drains dug around the hut and when
                            George returned from safari he managed to borrow an enormous tarpaulin which is now
                            lashed down over the roof.

                            It did not rain during the next few days George was home but the very next night
                            we were in trouble again. I was awakened by screams from Kate and hurriedly turned up
                            the lamp to see that we were in the midst of an invasion of siafu ants. Kate’s bed was
                            covered in them. Others appeared to be raining down from the thatch. I quickly stripped
                            Kate and carried her across to my bed, whilst I rushed to the pram to see whether
                            Johnny Jo was all right. He was fast asleep, bless him, and slept on through all the
                            commotion, whilst I struggled to pick all the ants out of Kate’s hair, stopping now and
                            again to attend to my own discomfort. These ants have a painful bite and seem to
                            choose all the most tender spots. Kate fell asleep eventually but I sat up for the rest of
                            the night to make sure that the siafu kept clear of the children. Next morning the servants
                            dispersed them by laying hot ash.

                            In spite of the dampness of the hut both children are blooming. Kate has rosy
                            cheeks and Johnny Jo now has a fuzz of fair hair and has lost his ‘old man’ look. He
                            reminds me of Ann at his age.

                            Eleanor.

                            Iringa. 30th November 1938

                            Dearest Family,

                            Here we are back in the Southern Highlands and installed on the second floor of
                            another German Fort. This one has been modernised however and though not so
                            romantic as the Mbulu Fort from the outside, it is much more comfortable.We are all well
                            and I am really proud of our two safari babies who stood up splendidly to a most trying
                            journey North from Mbulu to Arusha and then South down the Great North Road to
                            Iringa where we expect to stay for a month.

                            At Arusha George reported to the headquarters of the Game Department and
                            was instructed to come on down here on Rinderpest Control. There is a great flap on in
                            case the rinderpest spread to Northern Rhodesia and possibly onwards to Southern
                            Rhodesia and South Africa. Extra veterinary officers have been sent to this area to
                            inoculate all the cattle against the disease whilst George and his African game Scouts will
                            comb the bush looking for and destroying diseased game. If the rinderpest spreads,
                            George says it may be necessary to shoot out all the game in a wide belt along the
                            border between the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and Northern Rhodesia, to
                            prevent the disease spreading South. The very idea of all this destruction sickens us
                            both.

                            George left on a foot safari the day after our arrival and I expect I shall be lucky if I
                            see him occasionally at weekends until this job is over. When rinderpest is under control
                            George is to be stationed at a place called Nzassa in the Eastern Province about 18
                            miles from Dar es Salaam. George’s orderly, who is a tall, cheerful Game Scout called
                            Juma, tells me that he has been stationed at Nzassa and it is a frightful place! However I
                            refuse to be depressed. I now have the cheering prospect of leave to England in thirty
                            months time when we will be able to fetch Ann and George and be a proper family
                            again. Both Ann and George look happy in the snapshots which mother-in-law sends
                            frequently. Ann is doing very well at school and loves it.

                            To get back to our journey from Mbulu. It really was quite an experience. It
                            poured with rain most of the way and the road was very slippery and treacherous the
                            120 miles between Mbulu and Arusha. This is a little used earth road and the drains are
                            so blocked with silt as to be practically non existent. As usual we started our move with
                            the V8 loaded to capacity. I held Johnny on my knee and Kate squeezed in between
                            George and me. All our goods and chattels were in wooden boxes stowed in the back
                            and the two houseboys and the two dogs had to adjust themselves to the space that
                            remained. We soon ran into trouble and it took us all day to travel 47 miles. We stuck
                            several times in deep mud and had some most nasty skids. I simply clutched Kate in
                            one hand and Johnny Jo in the other and put my trust in George who never, under any
                            circumstances, loses his head. Poor Johnny only got his meals when circumstances
                            permitted. Unfortunately I had put him on a bottle only a few days before we left Mbulu
                            and, as I was unable to buy either a primus stove or Thermos flask there we had to
                            make a fire and boil water for each meal. Twice George sat out in the drizzle with a rain
                            coat rapped over his head to protect a miserable little fire of wet sticks drenched with
                            paraffin. Whilst we waited for the water to boil I pacified John by letting him suck a cube
                            of Tate and Lyles sugar held between my rather grubby fingers. Not at all according to
                            the book.

                            That night George, the children and I slept in the car having dumped our boxes
                            and the two servants in a deserted native hut. The rain poured down relentlessly all night
                            and by morning the road was more of a morass than ever. We swerved and skidded
                            alarmingly till eventually one of the wheel chains broke and had to be tied together with
                            string which constantly needed replacing. George was so patient though he was wet
                            and muddy and tired and both children were very good. Shortly before reaching the Great North Road we came upon Jack Gowan, the Stock Inspector from Mbulu. His car
                            was bogged down to its axles in black mud. He refused George’s offer of help saying
                            that he had sent his messenger to a nearby village for help.

                            I hoped that conditions would be better on the Great North Road but how over
                            optimistic I was. For miles the road runs through a belt of ‘black cotton soil’. which was
                            churned up into the consistency of chocolate blancmange by the heavy lorry traffic which
                            runs between Dodoma and Arusha. Soon the car was skidding more fantastically than
                            ever. Once it skidded around in a complete semi circle so George decided that it would
                            be safer for us all to walk whilst he negotiated the very bad patches. You should have
                            seen me plodding along in the mud and drizzle with the baby in one arm and Kate
                            clinging to the other. I was terrified of slipping with Johnny. Each time George reached
                            firm ground he would return on foot to carry Kate and in this way we covered many bad
                            patches.We were more fortunate than many other travellers. We passed several lorries
                            ditched on the side of the road and one car load of German men, all elegantly dressed in
                            lounge suits. One was busy with his camera so will have a record of their plight to laugh
                            over in the years to come. We spent another night camping on the road and next day
                            set out on the last lap of the journey. That also was tiresome but much better than the
                            previous day and we made the haven of the Arusha Hotel before dark. What a picture
                            we made as we walked through the hall in our mud splattered clothes! Even Johnny was
                            well splashed with mud but no harm was done and both he and Kate are blooming.
                            We rested for two days at Arusha and then came South to Iringa. Luckily the sun
                            came out and though for the first day the road was muddy it was no longer so slippery
                            and the second day found us driving through parched country and along badly
                            corrugated roads. The further South we came, the warmer the sun which at times blazed
                            through the windscreen and made us all uncomfortably hot. I have described the country
                            between Arusha and Dodoma before so I shan’t do it again. We reached Iringa without
                            mishap and after a good nights rest all felt full of beans.

                            Eleanor.

                            Mchewe Estate, Mbeya. 7th January 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            You will be surprised to note that we are back on the farm! At least the children
                            and I are here. George is away near the Rhodesian border somewhere, still on
                            Rinderpest control.

                            I had a pleasant time at Iringa, lots of invitations to morning tea and Kate had a
                            wonderful time enjoying the novelty of playing with children of her own age. She is not
                            shy but nevertheless likes me to be within call if not within sight. It was all very suburban
                            but pleasant enough. A few days before Christmas George turned up at Iringa and
                            suggested that, as he would be working in the Mbeya area, it might be a good idea for
                            the children and me to move to the farm. I agreed enthusiastically, completely forgetting
                            that after my previous trouble with the leopard I had vowed to myself that I would never
                            again live alone on the farm.

                            Alas no sooner had we arrived when Thomas, our farm headman, brought the
                            news that there were now two leopards terrorising the neighbourhood, and taking dogs,
                            goats and sheep and chickens. Traps and poisoned bait had been tried in vain and he
                            was sure that the female was the same leopard which had besieged our home before.
                            Other leopards said Thomas, came by stealth but this one advertised her whereabouts
                            in the most brazen manner.

                            George stayed with us on the farm over Christmas and all was quiet at night so I
                            cheered up and took the children for walks along the overgrown farm paths. However on
                            New Years Eve that darned leopard advertised her presence again with the most blood
                            chilling grunts and snarls. Horrible! Fanny and Paddy barked and growled and woke up
                            both children. Kate wept and kept saying, “Send it away mummy. I don’t like it.” Johnny
                            Jo howled in sympathy. What a picnic. So now the whole performance of bodyguards
                            has started again and ‘till George returns we confine our exercise to the garden.
                            Our little house is still cosy and sweet but the coffee plantation looks very
                            neglected. I wish to goodness we could sell it.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 14th February 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            After three months of moving around with two small children it is heavenly to be
                            settled in our own home, even though Nzassa is an isolated spot and has the reputation
                            of being unhealthy.

                            We travelled by car from Mbeya to Dodoma by now a very familiar stretch of
                            country, but from Dodoma to Dar es Salaam by train which made a nice change. We
                            spent two nights and a day in the Splendid Hotel in Dar es Salaam, George had some
                            official visits to make and I did some shopping and we took the children to the beach.
                            The bay is so sheltered that the sea is as calm as a pond and the water warm. It is
                            wonderful to see the sea once more and to hear tugs hooting and to watch the Arab
                            dhows putting out to sea with their oddly shaped sails billowing. I do love the bush, but
                            I love the sea best of all, as you know.

                            We made an early start for Nzassa on the 3rd. For about four miles we bowled
                            along a good road. This brought us to a place called Temeke where George called on
                            the District Officer. His house appears to be the only European type house there. The
                            road between Temeke and the turn off to Nzassa is quite good, but the six mile stretch
                            from the turn off to Nzassa is a very neglected bush road. There is nothing to be seen
                            but the impenetrable bush on both sides with here and there a patch of swampy
                            ground where rice is planted in the wet season.

                            After about six miles of bumpy road we reached Nzassa which is nothing more
                            than a sandy clearing in the bush. Our house however is a fine one. It was originally built
                            for the District Officer and there is a small court house which is now George’s office. The
                            District Officer died of blackwater fever so Nzassa was abandoned as an administrative
                            station being considered too unhealthy for Administrative Officers but suitable as
                            Headquarters for a Game Ranger. Later a bachelor Game Ranger was stationed here
                            but his health also broke down and he has been invalided to England. So now the
                            healthy Rushbys are here and we don’t mean to let the place get us down. So don’t
                            worry.

                            The house consists of three very large and airy rooms with their doors opening
                            on to a wide front verandah which we shall use as a living room. There is also a wide
                            back verandah with a store room at one end and a bathroom at the other. Both
                            verandahs and the end windows of the house are screened my mosquito gauze wire
                            and further protected by a trellis work of heavy expanded metal. Hasmani, the Game
                            Scout, who has been acting as caretaker, tells me that the expanded metal is very
                            necessary because lions often come out of the bush at night and roam around the
                            house. Such a comforting thought!

                            On our very first evening we discovered how necessary the mosquito gauze is.
                            After sunset the air outside is thick with mosquitos from the swamps. About an acre of
                            land has been cleared around the house. This is a sandy waste because there is no
                            water laid on here and absolutely nothing grows here except a rather revolting milky
                            desert bush called ‘Manyara’, and a few acacia trees. A little way from the house there is
                            a patch of citrus trees, grape fruit, I think, but whether they ever bear fruit I don’t know.
                            The clearing is bordered on three sides by dense dusty thorn bush which is
                            ‘lousy with buffalo’ according to George. The open side is the road which leads down to
                            George’s office and the huts for the Game Scouts. Only Hasmani and George’s orderly
                            Juma and their wives and families live there, and the other huts provide shelter for the
                            Game Scouts from the bush who come to Nzassa to collect their pay and for a short
                            rest. I can see that my daily walk will always be the same, down the road to the huts and
                            back! However I don’t mind because it is far too hot to take much exercise.

                            The climate here is really tropical and worse than on the coast because the thick
                            bush cuts us off from any sea breeze. George says it will be cooler when the rains start
                            but just now we literally drip all day. Kate wears nothing but a cotton sun suit, and Johnny
                            a napkin only, but still their little bodies are always moist. I have shorn off all Kate’s lovely
                            shoulder length curls and got George to cut my hair very short too.

                            We simply must buy a refrigerator. The butter, and even the cheese we bought
                            in Dar. simply melted into pools of oil overnight, and all our meat went bad, so we are
                            living out of tins. However once we get organised I shall be quite happy here. I like this
                            spacious house and I have good servants. The cook, Hamisi Issa, is a Swahili from Lindi
                            whom we engaged in Dar es Salaam. He is a very dignified person, and like most
                            devout Mohammedan Cooks, keeps both his person and the kitchen spotless. I
                            engaged the house boy here. He is rather a timid little body but is very willing and quite
                            capable. He has an excessively plain but cheerful wife whom I have taken on as ayah. I
                            do not really need help with the children but feel I must have a woman around just in
                            case I go down with malaria when George is away on safari.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 28th February 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            George’s birthday and we had a special tea party this afternoon which the
                            children much enjoyed. We have our frig now so I am able to make jellies and provide
                            them with really cool drinks.

                            Our very first visitor left this morning after spending only one night here. He is Mr
                            Ionides, the Game Ranger from the Southern Province. He acted as stand in here for a
                            short while after George’s predecessor left for England on sick leave, and where he has
                            since died. Mr Ionides returned here to hand over the range and office formally to
                            George. He seems a strange man and is from all accounts a bit of a hermit. He was at
                            one time an Officer in the Regular Army but does not look like a soldier, he wears the
                            most extraordinary clothes but nevertheless contrives to look top-drawer. He was
                            educated at Rugby and Sandhurst and is, I should say, well read. Ionides told us that he
                            hated Nzassa, particularly the house which he thinks sinister and says he always slept
                            down in the office.

                            The house, or at least one bedroom, seems to have the same effect on Kate.
                            She has been very nervous at night ever since we arrived. At first the children occupied
                            the bedroom which is now George’s. One night, soon after our arrival, Kate woke up
                            screaming to say that ‘something’ had looked at her through the mosquito net. She was
                            in such a hysterical state that inspite of the heat and discomfort I was obliged to crawl into
                            her little bed with her and remained there for the rest of the night.

                            Next night I left a night lamp burning but even so I had to sit by her bed until she
                            dropped off to sleep. Again I was awakened by ear-splitting screams and this time
                            found Kate standing rigid on her bed. I lifted her out and carried her to a chair meaning to
                            comfort her but she screeched louder than ever, “Look Mummy it’s under the bed. It’s
                            looking at us.” In vain I pointed out that there was nothing at all there. By this time
                            George had joined us and he carried Kate off to his bed in the other room whilst I got into
                            Kate’s bed thinking she might have been frightened by a rat which might also disturb
                            Johnny.

                            Next morning our houseboy remarked that he had heard Kate screaming in the
                            night from his room behind the kitchen. I explained what had happened and he must
                            have told the old Scout Hasmani who waylaid me that afternoon and informed me quite
                            seriously that that particular room was haunted by a ‘sheitani’ (devil) who hates children.
                            He told me that whilst he was acting as caretaker before our arrival he one night had his
                            wife and small daughter in the room to keep him company. He said that his small
                            daughter woke up and screamed exactly as Kate had done! Silly coincidence I
                            suppose, but such strange things happen in Africa that I decided to move the children
                            into our room and George sleeps in solitary state in the haunted room! Kate now sleeps
                            peacefully once she goes to sleep but I have to stay with her until she does.

                            I like this house and it does not seem at all sinister to me. As I mentioned before,
                            the rooms are high ceilinged and airy, and have cool cement floors. We have made one
                            end of the enclosed verandah into the living room and the other end is the playroom for
                            the children. The space in between is a sort of no-mans land taken over by the dogs as
                            their special territory.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 25th March 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            George is on safari down in the Rufigi River area. He is away for about three
                            weeks in the month on this job. I do hate to see him go and just manage to tick over until
                            he comes back. But what fun and excitement when he does come home.
                            Usually he returns after dark by which time the children are in bed and I have
                            settled down on the verandah with a book. The first warning is usually given by the
                            dogs, Fanny and her son Paddy. They stir, sit up, look at each other and then go and sit
                            side by side by the door with their noses practically pressed to the mosquito gauze and
                            ears pricked. Soon I can hear the hum of the car, and so can Hasmani, the old Game
                            Scout who sleeps on the back verandah with rifle and ammunition by his side when
                            George is away. When he hears the car he turns up his lamp and hurries out to rouse
                            Juma, the houseboy. Juma pokes up the fire and prepares tea which George always
                            drinks whist a hot meal is being prepared. In the meantime I hurriedly comb my hair and
                            powder my nose so that when the car stops I am ready to rush out and welcome
                            George home. The boy and Hasmani and the garden boy appear to help with the
                            luggage and to greet George and the cook, who always accompanies George on
                            Safari. The home coming is always a lively time with much shouting of greetings.
                            ‘Jambo’, and ‘Habari ya safari’, whilst the dogs, beside themselves with excitement,
                            rush around like lunatics.

                            As though his return were not happiness enough, George usually collects the
                            mail on his way home so there is news of Ann and young George and letters from you
                            and bundles of newspapers and magazines. On the day following his return home,
                            George has to deal with official mail in the office but if the following day is a weekday we
                            all, the house servants as well as ourselves, pile into the boxbody and go to Dar es
                            Salaam. To us this means a mornings shopping followed by an afternoon on the beach.
                            It is a bit cooler now that the rains are on but still very humid. Kate keeps chubby
                            and rosy in spite of the climate but Johnny is too pale though sturdy enough. He is such
                            a good baby which is just as well because Kate is a very demanding little girl though
                            sunny tempered and sweet. I appreciate her company very much when George is
                            away because we are so far off the beaten track that no one ever calls.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 28th April 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            You all seem to wonder how I can stand the loneliness and monotony of living at
                            Nzassa when George is on safari, but really and truly I do not mind. Hamisi the cook
                            always goes on safari with George and then the houseboy Juma takes over the cooking
                            and I do the lighter housework. the children are great company during the day, and when
                            they are settled for the night I sit on the verandah and read or write letters or I just dream.
                            The verandah is entirely enclosed with both wire mosquito gauze and a trellis
                            work of heavy expanded metal, so I am safe from all intruders be they human, animal, or
                            insect. Outside the air is alive with mosquitos and the cicadas keep up their monotonous
                            singing all night long. My only companions on the verandah are the pale ghecco lizards
                            on the wall and the two dogs. Fanny the white bull terrier, lies always near my feet
                            dozing happily, but her son Paddy, who is half Airedale has a less phlegmatic
                            disposition. He sits alert and on guard by the metal trellis work door. Often a lion grunts
                            from the surrounding bush and then his hackles rise and he stands up stiffly with his nose
                            pressed to the door. Old Hasmani from his bedroll on the back verandah, gives a little
                            cough just to show he is awake. Sometimes the lions are very close and then I hear the
                            click of a rifle bolt as Hasmani loads his rifle – but this is usually much later at night when
                            the lights are out. One morning I saw large pug marks between the wall of my bedroom
                            and the garage but I do not fear lions like I did that beastly leopard on the farm.
                            A great deal of witchcraft is still practiced in the bush villages in the
                            neighbourhood. I must tell you about old Hasmani’s baby in connection with this. Last
                            week Hasmani came to me in great distress to say that his baby was ‘Ngongwa sana ‘
                            (very ill) and he thought it would die. I hurried down to the Game Scouts quarters to see
                            whether I could do anything for the child and found the mother squatting in the sun
                            outside her hut with the baby on her lap. The mother was a young woman but not an
                            attractive one. She appeared sullen and indifferent compared with old Hasmani who
                            was very distressed. The child was very feverish and breathing with difficulty and
                            seemed to me to be suffering from bronchitis if not pneumonia. I rubbed his back and
                            chest with camphorated oil and dosed him with aspirin and liquid quinine. I repeated the
                            treatment every four hours, but next day there was no apparent improvement.
                            In the afternoon Hasmani begged me to give him that night off duty and asked for
                            a loan of ten shillings. He explained to me that it seemed to him that the white man’s
                            medicine had failed to cure his child and now he wished to take the child to the local witch
                            doctor. “For ten shillings” said Hasmani, “the Maganga will drive the devil out of my
                            child.” “How?” asked I. “With drums”, said Hasmani confidently. I did not know what to
                            do. I thought the child was too ill to be exposed to the night air, yet I knew that if I
                            refused his request and the child were to die, Hasmani and all the other locals would hold
                            me responsible. I very reluctantly granted his request. I was so troubled by the matter
                            that I sent for George’s office clerk. Daniel, and asked him to accompany Hasmani to the
                            ceremony and to report to me the next morning. It started to rain after dark and all night
                            long I lay awake in bed listening to the drums and the light rain. Next morning when I
                            went out to the kitchen to order breakfast I found a beaming Hasmani awaiting me.
                            “Memsahib”, he said. “My child is well, the fever is now quite gone, the Maganga drove
                            out the devil just as I told you.” Believe it or not, when I hurried to his quarters after
                            breakfast I found the mother suckling a perfectly healthy child! It may be my imagination
                            but I thought the mother looked pretty smug.The clerk Daniel told me that after Hasmani
                            had presented gifts of money and food to the ‘Maganga’, the naked baby was placed
                            on a goat skin near the drums. Most of the time he just lay there but sometimes the witch
                            doctor picked him up and danced with the child in his arms. Daniel seemed reluctant to
                            talk about it. Whatever mumbo jumbo was used all this happened a week ago and the
                            baby has never looked back.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 3rd July 1939.

                            Dearest Family,

                            Did I tell you that one of George’s Game Scouts was murdered last month in the
                            Maneromango area towards the Rufigi border. He was on routine patrol, with a porter
                            carrying his bedding and food, when they suddenly came across a group of African
                            hunters who were busy cutting up a giraffe which they had just killed. These hunters were
                            all armed with muzzle loaders, spears and pangas, but as it is illegal to kill giraffe without
                            a permit, the Scout went up to the group to take their names. Some argument ensued
                            and the Scout was stabbed.

                            The District Officer went to the area to investigate and decided to call in the Police
                            from Dar es Salaam. A party of police went out to search for the murderers but after
                            some days returned without making any arrests. George was on an elephant control
                            safari in the Bagamoyo District and on his return through Dar es Salaam he heard of the
                            murder. George was furious and distressed to hear the news and called in here for an
                            hour on his way to Maneromango to search for the murderers himself.

                            After a great deal of strenuous investigation he arrested three poachers, put them
                            in jail for the night at Maneromango and then brought them to Dar es Salaam where they
                            are all now behind bars. George will now have to prosecute in the Magistrate’s Court
                            and try and ‘make a case’ so that the prisoners may be committed to the High Court to
                            be tried for murder. George is convinced of their guilt and justifiably proud to have
                            succeeded where the police failed.

                            George had to borrow handcuffs for the prisoners from the Chief at
                            Maneromango and these he brought back to Nzassa after delivering the prisoners to
                            Dar es Salaam so that he may return them to the Chief when he revisits the area next
                            week.

                            I had not seen handcuffs before and picked up a pair to examine them. I said to
                            George, engrossed in ‘The Times’, “I bet if you were arrested they’d never get
                            handcuffs on your wrist. Not these anyway, they look too small.” “Standard pattern,”
                            said George still concentrating on the newspaper, but extending an enormous relaxed
                            left wrist. So, my dears, I put a bracelet round his wrist and as there was a wide gap I
                            gave a hard squeeze with both hands. There was a sharp click as the handcuff engaged
                            in the first notch. George dropped the paper and said, “Now you’ve done it, my love,
                            one set of keys are in the Dar es Salaam Police Station, and the others with the Chief at
                            Maneromango.” You can imagine how utterly silly I felt but George was an angel about it
                            and said as he would have to go to Dar es Salaam we might as well all go.

                            So we all piled into the car, George, the children and I in the front, and the cook
                            and houseboy, immaculate in snowy khanzus and embroidered white caps, a Game
                            Scout and the ayah in the back. George never once complain of the discomfort of the
                            handcuff but I was uncomfortably aware that it was much too tight because his arm
                            above the cuff looked red and swollen and the hand unnaturally pale. As the road is so
                            bad George had to use both hands on the wheel and all the time the dangling handcuff
                            clanked against the dashboard in an accusing way.

                            We drove straight to the Police Station and I could hear the roars of laughter as
                            George explained his predicament. Later I had to put up with a good deal of chaffing
                            and congratulations upon putting the handcuffs on George.

                            Eleanor.

                            Nzassa 5th August 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            George made a point of being here for Kate’s fourth birthday last week. Just
                            because our children have no playmates George and I always do all we can to make
                            birthdays very special occasions. We went to Dar es Salaam the day before the
                            birthday and bought Kate a very sturdy tricycle with which she is absolutely delighted.
                            You will be glad to know that your parcels arrived just in time and Kate loved all your
                            gifts especially the little shop from Dad with all the miniature tins and packets of
                            groceries. The tea set was also a great success and is much in use.

                            We had a lively party which ended with George and me singing ‘Happy
                            Birthday to you’, and ended with a wild game with balloons. Kate wore her frilly white net
                            party frock and looked so pretty that it seemed a shame that there was no one but us to
                            see her. Anyway it was a good party. I wish so much that you could see the children.
                            Kate keeps rosy and has not yet had malaria. Johnny Jo is sturdy but pale. He
                            runs a temperature now and again but I am not sure whether this is due to teething or
                            malaria. Both children of course take quinine every day as George and I do. George
                            quite frequently has malaria in spite of prophylactic quinine but this is not surprising as he
                            got the germ thoroughly established in his system in his early elephant hunting days. I
                            get it too occasionally but have not been really ill since that first time a month after my
                            arrival in the country.

                            Johnny is such a good baby. His chief claim to beauty is his head of soft golden
                            curls but these are due to come off on his first birthday as George considers them too
                            girlish. George left on safari the day after the party and the very next morning our wood
                            boy had a most unfortunate accident. He was chopping a rather tough log when a chip
                            flew up and split his upper lip clean through from mouth to nostril exposing teeth and
                            gums. A truly horrible sight and very bloody. I cleaned up the wound as best I could
                            and sent him off to the hospital at Dar es Salaam on the office bicycle. He wobbled
                            away wretchedly down the road with a white cloth tied over his mouth to keep off the
                            dust. He returned next day with his lip stitched and very swollen and bearing a
                            resemblance to my lip that time I used the hair remover.

                            Eleanor.

                            Splendid Hotel. Dar es Salaam 7th September 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            So now another war has started and it has disrupted even our lives. We have left
                            Nzassa for good. George is now a Lieutenant in the King’s African Rifles and the children
                            and I are to go to a place called Morogoro to await further developments.
                            I was glad to read in today’s paper that South Africa has declared war on
                            Germany. I would have felt pretty small otherwise in this hotel which is crammed full of
                            men who have been called up for service in the Army. George seems exhilarated by
                            the prospect of active service. He is bursting out of his uniform ( at the shoulders only!)
                            and all too ready for the fray.

                            The war came as a complete surprise to me stuck out in the bush as I was without
                            wireless or mail. George had been away for a fortnight so you can imagine how
                            surprised I was when a messenger arrived on a bicycle with a note from George. The
                            note informed me that war had been declared and that George, as a Reserve Officer in
                            the KAR had been called up. I was to start packing immediately and be ready by noon
                            next day when George would arrive with a lorry for our goods and chattels. I started to
                            pack immediately with the help of the houseboy and by the time George arrived with
                            the lorry only the frig remained to be packed and this was soon done.

                            Throughout the morning Game Scouts had been arriving from outlying parts of
                            the District. I don’t think they had the least idea where they were supposed to go or
                            whom they were to fight but were ready to fight anybody, anywhere, with George.
                            They all looked very smart in well pressed uniforms hung about with water bottles and
                            ammunition pouches. The large buffalo badge on their round pill box hats absolutely
                            glittered with polish. All of course carried rifles and when George arrived they all lined up
                            and they looked most impressive. I took some snaps but unfortunately it was drizzling
                            and they may not come out well.

                            We left Nzassa without a backward glance. We were pretty fed up with it by
                            then. The children and I are spending a few days here with George but our luggage, the
                            dogs, and the houseboys have already left by train for Morogoro where a small house
                            has been found for the children and me.

                            George tells me that all the German males in this Territory were interned without a
                            hitch. The whole affair must have been very well organised. In every town and
                            settlement special constables were sworn in to do the job. It must have been a rather
                            unpleasant one but seems to have gone without incident. There is a big transit camp
                            here at Dar for the German men. Later they are to be sent out of the country, possibly to
                            Rhodesia.

                            The Indian tailors in the town are all terribly busy making Army uniforms, shorts
                            and tunics in khaki drill. George swears that they have muddled their orders and he has
                            been given the wrong things. Certainly the tunic is far too tight. His hat, a khaki slouch hat
                            like you saw the Australians wearing in the last war, is also too small though it is the
                            largest they have in stock. We had a laugh over his other equipment which includes a
                            small canvas haversack and a whistle on a black cord. George says he feels like he is
                            back in his Boy Scouting boyhood.

                            George has just come in to say the we will be leaving for Morogoro tomorrow
                            afternoon.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 14th September 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            Morogoro is a complete change from Nzassa. This is a large and sprawling
                            township. The native town and all the shops are down on the flat land by the railway but
                            all the European houses are away up the slope of the high Uluguru Mountains.
                            Morogoro was a flourishing town in the German days and all the streets are lined with
                            trees for coolness as is the case in other German towns. These trees are the flamboyant
                            acacia which has an umbrella top and throws a wide but light shade.

                            Most of the houses have large gardens so they cover a considerable area and it
                            is quite a safari for me to visit friends on foot as our house is on the edge of this area and
                            the furthest away from the town. Here ones house is in accordance with ones seniority in
                            Government service. Ours is a simple affair, just three lofty square rooms opening on to
                            a wide enclosed verandah. Mosquitoes are bad here so all doors and windows are
                            screened and we will have to carry on with our daily doses of quinine.

                            George came up to Morogoro with us on the train. This was fortunate because I
                            went down with a sharp attack of malaria at the hotel on the afternoon of our departure
                            from Dar es Salaam. George’s drastic cure of vast doses of quinine, a pillow over my
                            head, and the bed heaped with blankets soon brought down the temperature so I was
                            fit enough to board the train but felt pretty poorly on the trip. However next day I felt
                            much better which was a good thing as George had to return to Dar es Salaam after two
                            days. His train left late at night so I did not see him off but said good-bye at home
                            feeling dreadful but trying to keep the traditional stiff upper lip of the wife seeing her
                            husband off to the wars. He hopes to go off to Abyssinia but wrote from Dar es Salaam
                            to say that he is being sent down to Rhodesia by road via Mbeya to escort the first
                            detachment of Rhodesian white troops.

                            First he will have to select suitable camping sites for night stops and arrange for
                            supplies of food. I am very pleased as it means he will be safe for a while anyway. We
                            are both worried about Ann and George in England and wonder if it would be safer to
                            have them sent out.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 4th November 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            My big news is that George has been released from the Army. He is very
                            indignant and disappointed because he hoped to go to Abyssinia but I am terribly,
                            terribly glad. The Chief Secretary wrote a very nice letter to George pointing out that he
                            would be doing a greater service to his country by his work of elephant control, giving
                            crop protection during the war years when foodstuffs are such a vital necessity, than by
                            doing a soldiers job. The Government plan to start a huge rice scheme in the Rufiji area,
                            and want George to control the elephant and hippo there. First of all though. he must go
                            to the Southern Highlands Province where there is another outbreak of Rinderpest, to
                            shoot out diseased game especially buffalo, which might spread the disease.

                            So off we go again on our travels but this time we are leaving the two dogs
                            behind in the care of Daniel, the Game Clerk. Fanny is very pregnant and I hate leaving
                            her behind but the clerk has promised to look after her well. We are taking Hamisi, our
                            dignified Swahili cook and the houseboy Juma and his wife whom we brought with us
                            from Nzassa. The boy is not very good but his wife makes a cheerful and placid ayah
                            and adores Johnny.

                            Eleanor.

                            Iringa 8th December 1939

                            Dearest Family,

                            The children and I are staying in a small German house leased from the
                            Custodian of Enemy Property. I can’t help feeling sorry for the owners who must be in
                            concentration camps somewhere.George is away in the bush dealing with the
                            Rinderpest emergency and the cook has gone with him. Now I have sent the houseboy
                            and the ayah away too. Two days ago my houseboy came and told me that he felt
                            very ill and asked me to write a ‘chit’ to the Indian Doctor. In the note I asked the Doctor
                            to let me know the nature of his complaint and to my horror I got a note from him to say
                            that the houseboy had a bad case of Venereal Disease. Was I horrified! I took it for
                            granted that his wife must be infected too and told them both that they would have to
                            return to their home in Nzassa. The boy shouted and the ayah wept but I paid them in
                            lieu of notice and gave them money for the journey home. So there I was left servant
                            less with firewood to chop, a smokey wood burning stove to control, and of course, the
                            two children.

                            To add to my troubles Johnny had a temperature so I sent for the European
                            Doctor. He diagnosed malaria and was astonished at the size of Johnny’s spleen. He
                            said that he must have had suppressed malaria over a long period and the poor child
                            must now be fed maximum doses of quinine for a long time. The Doctor is a fatherly
                            soul, he has been recalled from retirement to do this job as so many of the young
                            doctors have been called up for service with the army.

                            I told him about my houseboy’s complaint and the way I had sent him off
                            immediately, and he was very amused at my haste, saying that it is most unlikely that
                            they would have passed the disease onto their employers. Anyway I hated the idea. I
                            mean to engage a houseboy locally, but will do without an ayah until we return to
                            Morogoro in February.

                            Something happened today to cheer me up. A telegram came from Daniel which
                            read, “FLANNEL HAS FIVE CUBS.”

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 10th March 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            We are having very heavy rain and the countryside is a most beautiful green. In
                            spite of the weather George is away on safari though it must be very wet and
                            unpleasant. He does work so hard at his elephant hunting job and has got very thin. I
                            suppose this is partly due to those stomach pains he gets and the doctors don’t seem
                            to diagnose the trouble.

                            Living in Morogoro is much like living in a country town in South Africa, particularly
                            as there are several South African women here. I go out quite often to morning teas. We
                            all take our war effort knitting, and natter, and are completely suburban.
                            I sometimes go and see an elderly couple who have been interred here. They
                            are cold shouldered by almost everyone else but I cannot help feeling sorry for them.
                            Usually I go by invitation because I know Mrs Ruppel prefers to be prepared and
                            always has sandwiches and cake. They both speak English but not fluently and
                            conversation is confined to talking about my children and theirs. Their two sons were
                            students in Germany when war broke out but are now of course in the German Army.
                            Such nice looking chaps from their photographs but I suppose thorough Nazis. As our
                            conversation is limited I usually ask to hear a gramophone record or two. They have a
                            large collection.

                            Janet, the ayah whom I engaged at Mbeya, is proving a great treasure. She is a
                            trained hospital ayah and is most dependable and capable. She is, perhaps, a little strict
                            but the great thing is that I can trust her with the children out of my sight.
                            Last week I went out at night for the first time without George. The occasion was
                            a farewell sundowner given by the Commissioner of Prisoners and his wife. I was driven
                            home by the District Officer and he stopped his car by the back door in a large puddle.
                            Ayah came to the back door, storm lamp in hand, to greet me. My escort prepared to
                            drive off but the car stuck. I thought a push from me might help, so without informing the
                            driver, I pushed as hard as I could on the back of the car. Unfortunately the driver
                            decided on other tactics. He put the engine in reverse and I was knocked flat on my back
                            in the puddle. The car drove forward and away without the driver having the least idea of
                            what happened. The ayah was in quite a state, lifting me up and scolding me for my
                            stupidity as though I were Kate. I was a bit shaken but non the worse and will know
                            better next time.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 14th July 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            How good it was of Dad to send that cable to Mother offering to have Ann and
                            George to live with you if they are accepted for inclusion in the list of children to be
                            evacuated to South Africa. It would be wonderful to know that they are safely out of the
                            war zone and so much nearer to us but I do dread the thought of the long sea voyage
                            particularly since we heard the news of the sinking of that liner carrying child evacuees to
                            Canada. I worry about them so much particularly as George is so often away on safari.
                            He is so comforting and calm and I feel brave and confident when he is home.
                            We have had no news from England for five weeks but, when she last wrote,
                            mother said the children were very well and that she was sure they would be safe in the
                            country with her.

                            Kate and John are growing fast. Kate is such a pretty little girl, rosy in spite of the
                            rather trying climate. I have allowed her hair to grow again and it hangs on her shoulders
                            in shiny waves. John is a more slightly built little boy than young George was, and quite
                            different in looks. He has Dad’s high forehead and cleft chin, widely spaced brown eyes
                            that are not so dark as mine and hair that is still fair and curly though ayah likes to smooth it
                            down with water every time she dresses him. He is a shy child, and although he plays
                            happily with Kate, he does not care to play with other children who go in the late
                            afternoons to a lawn by the old German ‘boma’.

                            Kate has playmates of her own age but still rather clings to me. Whilst she loves
                            to have friends here to play with her, she will not go to play at their houses unless I go
                            too and stay. She always insists on accompanying me when I go out to morning tea
                            and always calls Janet “John’s ayah”. One morning I went to a knitting session at a
                            neighbours house. We are all knitting madly for the troops. As there were several other
                            women in the lounge and no other children, I installed Kate in the dining room with a
                            colouring book and crayons. My hostess’ black dog was chained to the dining room
                            table leg, but as he and Kate are on friendly terms I was not bothered by this.
                            Some time afterwards, during a lull in conversation, I heard a strange drumming
                            noise coming from the dining room. I went quickly to investigate and, to my horror, found
                            Kate lying on her back with the dog chain looped around her neck. The frightened dog
                            was straining away from her as far as he could get and the chain was pulled so tightly
                            around her throat that she could not scream. The drumming noise came from her heels
                            kicking in a panic on the carpet.

                            Even now I do not know how Kate got herself into this predicament. Luckily no
                            great harm was done but I think I shall do my knitting at home in future.

                            Eleanor.

                            Morogoro 16th November 1940

                            Dearest Family,

                            I much prefer our little house on the hillside to the larger one we had down below.
                            The only disadvantage is that the garden is on three levels and both children have had
                            some tumbles down the steps on the tricycle. John is an extremely stoical child. He
                            never cries when he hurts himself.

                            I think I have mentioned ‘Morningside’ before. It is a kind of Resthouse high up in
                            the Uluguru Mountains above Morogoro. Jess Howe-Browne, who runs the large
                            house as a Guest House, is a wonderful woman. Besides running the boarding house
                            she also grows vegetables, flowers and fruit for sale in Morogoro and Dar es Salaam.
                            Her guests are usually women and children from Dar es Salaam who come in the hot
                            season to escape the humidity on the coast. Often the mothers leave their children for
                            long periods in Jess Howe-Browne’s care. There is a road of sorts up the mountain side
                            to Morningside, but this is so bad that cars do not attempt it and guests are carried up
                            the mountain in wicker chairs lashed to poles. Four men carry an adult, and two a child,
                            and there are of course always spare bearers and they work in shifts.

                            Last week the children and I went to Morningside for the day as guests. John
                            rode on my lap in one chair and Kate in a small chair on her own. This did not please
                            Kate at all. The poles are carried on the bearers shoulders and one is perched quite high.
                            The motion is a peculiar rocking one. The bearers chant as they go and do not seem
                            worried by shortness of breath! They are all hillmen of course and are, I suppose, used
                            to trotting up and down to the town.

                            Morningside is well worth visiting and we spent a delightful day there. The fresh
                            cool air is a great change from the heavy air of the valley. A river rushes down the
                            mountain in a series of cascades, and the gardens are shady and beautiful. Behind the
                            property is a thick indigenous forest which stretches from Morningside to the top of the
                            mountain. The house is an old German one, rather in need of repair, but Jess has made
                            it comfortable and attractive, with some of her old family treasures including a fine old
                            Grandfather clock. We had a wonderful lunch which included large fresh strawberries and
                            cream. We made the return journey again in the basket chairs and got home before dark.
                            George returned home at the weekend with a baby elephant whom we have
                            called Winnie. She was rescued from a mud hole by some African villagers and, as her
                            mother had abandoned her, they took her home and George was informed. He went in
                            the truck to fetch her having first made arrangements to have her housed in a shed on the
                            Agriculture Department Experimental Farm here. He has written to the Game Dept
                            Headquarters to inform the Game Warden and I do not know what her future will be, but
                            in the meantime she is our pet. George is afraid she will not survive because she has
                            had a very trying time. She stands about waist high and is a delightful creature and quite
                            docile. Asian and African children as well as Europeans gather to watch her and George
                            encourages them to bring fruit for her – especially pawpaws which she loves.
                            Whilst we were there yesterday one of the local ladies came, very smartly
                            dressed in a linen frock, silk stockings, and high heeled shoes. She watched fascinated
                            whilst Winnie neatly split a pawpaw and removed the seeds with her trunk, before
                            scooping out the pulp and putting it in her mouth. It was a particularly nice ripe pawpaw
                            and Winnie enjoyed it so much that she stretched out her trunk for more. The lady took
                            fright and started to run with Winnie after her, sticky trunk outstretched. Quite an
                            entertaining sight. George managed to stop Winnie but not before she had left a gooey
                            smear down the back of the immaculate frock.

                            Eleanor.

                             

                            #6264
                            TracyTracy
                            Participant

                              From Tanganyika with Love

                              continued  ~ part 5

                              With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                              Chunya 16th December 1936

                              Dearest Family,

                              Since last I wrote I have visited Chunya and met several of the diggers wives.
                              On the whole I have been greatly disappointed because there is nothing very colourful
                              about either township or women. I suppose I was really expecting something more like
                              the goldrush towns and women I have so often seen on the cinema screen.
                              Chunya consists of just the usual sun-dried brick Indian shops though there are
                              one or two double storied buildings. Most of the life in the place centres on the
                              Goldfields Hotel but we did not call there. From the store opposite I could hear sounds
                              of revelry though it was very early in the afternoon. I saw only one sight which was quite
                              new to me, some elegantly dressed African women, with high heels and lipsticked
                              mouths teetered by on their way to the silk store. “Native Tarts,” said George in answer
                              to my enquiry.

                              Several women have called on me and when I say ‘called’ I mean called. I have
                              grown so used to going without stockings and wearing home made dresses that it was
                              quite a shock to me to entertain these ladies dressed to the nines in smart frocks, silk
                              stockings and high heeled shoes, handbags, makeup and whatnot. I feel like some
                              female Rip van Winkle. Most of the women have a smart line in conversation and their
                              talk and views on life would make your nice straight hair curl Mummy. They make me feel
                              very unsophisticated and dowdy but George says he has a weakness for such types
                              and I am to stay exactly as I am. I still do not use any makeup. George says ‘It’s all right
                              for them. They need it poor things, you don’t.” Which, though flattering, is hardly true.
                              I prefer the men visitors, though they also are quite unlike what I had expected
                              diggers to be. Those whom George brings home are all well educated and well
                              groomed and I enjoy listening to their discussion of the world situation, sport and books.
                              They are extremely polite to me and gentle with the children though I believe that after a
                              few drinks at the pub tempers often run high. There were great arguments on the night
                              following the abdication of Edward VIII. Not that the diggers were particularly attached to
                              him as a person, but these men are all great individualists and believe in freedom of
                              choice. George, rather to my surprise, strongly supported Edward. I did not.

                              Many of the diggers have wireless sets and so we keep up to date with the
                              news. I seldom leave camp. I have my hands full with the three children during the day
                              and, even though Janey is a reliable ayah, I would not care to leave the children at night
                              in these grass roofed huts. Having experienced that fire on the farm, I know just how
                              unlikely it would be that the children would be rescued in time in case of fire. The other
                              women on the diggings think I’m crazy. They leave their children almost entirely to ayahs
                              and I must confess that the children I have seen look very well and happy. The thing is
                              that I simply would not enjoy parties at the hotel or club, miles away from the children
                              and I much prefer to stay at home with a book.

                              I love hearing all about the parties from George who likes an occasional ‘boose
                              up’ with the boys and is terribly popular with everyone – not only the British but with the
                              Germans, Scandinavians and even the Afrikaans types. One Afrikaans woman said “Jou
                              man is ‘n man, al is hy ‘n Engelsman.” Another more sophisticated woman said, “George
                              is a handsome devil. Aren’t you scared to let him run around on his own?” – but I’m not. I
                              usually wait up for George with sandwiches and something hot to drink and that way I
                              get all the news red hot.

                              There is very little gold coming in. The rains have just started and digging is
                              temporarily at a standstill. It is too wet for dry blowing and not yet enough water for
                              panning and sluicing. As this camp is some considerable distance from the claims, all I see of the process is the weighing of the daily taking of gold dust and tiny nuggets.
                              Unless our luck changes I do not think we will stay on here after John Molteno returns.
                              George does not care for the life and prefers a more constructive occupation.
                              Ann and young George still search optimistically for gold. We were all saddened
                              last week by the death of Fanny, our bull terrier. She went down to the shopping centre
                              with us and we were standing on the verandah of a store when a lorry passed with its
                              canvas cover flapping. This excited Fanny who rushed out into the street and the back
                              wheel of the lorry passed right over her, killing her instantly. Ann was very shocked so I
                              soothed her by telling her that Fanny had gone to Heaven. When I went to bed that
                              night I found Ann still awake and she asked anxiously, “Mummy, do you think God
                              remembered to give Fanny her bone tonight?”

                              Much love to all,
                              Eleanor.

                              Itewe, Chunya 23rd December 1936

                              Dearest Family,

                              Your Christmas parcel arrived this morning. Thank you very much for all the
                              clothing for all of us and for the lovely toys for the children. George means to go hunting
                              for a young buffalo this afternoon so that we will have some fresh beef for Christmas for
                              ourselves and our boys and enough for friends too.

                              I had a fright this morning. Ann and Georgie were, as usual, searching for gold
                              whilst I sat sewing in the living room with Kate toddling around. She wandered through
                              the curtained doorway into the store and I heard her playing with the paraffin pump. At
                              first it did not bother me because I knew the tin was empty but after ten minutes or so I
                              became irritated by the noise and went to stop her. Imagine my horror when I drew the
                              curtain aside and saw my fat little toddler fiddling happily with the pump whilst, curled up
                              behind the tin and clearly visible to me lay the largest puffadder I have ever seen.
                              Luckily I acted instinctively and scooped Kate up from behind and darted back into the
                              living room without disturbing the snake. The houseboy and cook rushed in with sticks
                              and killed the snake and then turned the whole storeroom upside down to make sure
                              there were no more.

                              I have met some more picturesque characters since I last wrote. One is a man
                              called Bishop whom George has known for many years having first met him in the
                              Congo. I believe he was originally a sailor but for many years he has wandered around
                              Central Africa trying his hand at trading, prospecting, a bit of elephant hunting and ivory
                              poaching. He is now keeping himself by doing ‘Sign Writing”. Bish is a gentle and
                              dignified personality. When we visited his camp he carefully dusted a seat for me and
                              called me ‘Marm’, quite ye olde world. The only thing is he did spit.

                              Another spitter is the Frenchman in a neighbouring camp. He is in bed with bad
                              rheumatism and George has been going across twice a day to help him and cheer him
                              up. Once when George was out on the claim I went across to the Frenchman’s camp in
                              response to an SOS, but I think he was just lonely. He showed me snapshots of his
                              two daughters, lovely girls and extremely smart, and he chatted away telling me his life
                              history. He punctuated his remarks by spitting to right and left of the bed, everywhere in
                              fact, except actually at me.

                              George took me and the children to visit a couple called Bert and Hilda Farham.
                              They have a small gold reef which is worked by a very ‘Heath Robinson’ type of
                              machinery designed and erected by Bert who is reputed to be a clever engineer though
                              eccentric. He is rather a handsome man who always looks very spruce and neat and
                              wears a Captain Kettle beard. Hilda is from Johannesburg and quite a character. She
                              has a most generous figure and literally masses of beetroot red hair, but she also has a
                              warm deep voice and a most generous disposition. The Farhams have built
                              themselves a more permanent camp than most. They have a brick cottage with proper
                              doors and windows and have made it attractive with furniture contrived from petrol
                              boxes. They have no children but Hilda lavishes a great deal of affection on a pet
                              monkey. Sometimes they do quite well out of their gold and then they have a terrific
                              celebration at the Club or Pub and Hilda has an orgy of shopping. At other times they
                              are completely broke but Hilda takes disasters as well as triumphs all in her stride. She
                              says, “My dear, when we’re broke we just live on tea and cigarettes.”

                              I have met a young woman whom I would like as a friend. She has a dear little
                              baby, but unfortunately she has a very wet husband who is also a dreadful bore. I can’t
                              imagine George taking me to their camp very often. When they came to visit us George
                              just sat and smoked and said,”Oh really?” to any remark this man made until I felt quite
                              hysterical. George looks very young and fit and the children are lively and well too. I ,
                              however, am definitely showing signs of wear and tear though George says,
                              “Nonsense, to me you look the same as you always did.” This I may say, I do not
                              regard as a compliment to the young Eleanor.

                              Anyway, even though our future looks somewhat unsettled, we are all together
                              and very happy.

                              With love,
                              Eleanor.

                              Itewe, Chunya 30th December 1936

                              Dearest Family,

                              We had a very cheery Christmas. The children loved the toys and are so proud
                              of their new clothes. They wore them when we went to Christmas lunch to the
                              Cresswell-Georges. The C-Gs have been doing pretty well lately and they have a
                              comfortable brick house and a large wireless set. The living room was gaily decorated
                              with bought garlands and streamers and balloons. We had an excellent lunch cooked by
                              our ex cook Abel who now works for the Cresswell-Georges. We had turkey with
                              trimmings and plum pudding followed by nuts and raisons and chocolates and sweets
                              galore. There was also a large variety of drinks including champagne!

                              There were presents for all of us and, in addition, Georgie and Ann each got a
                              large tin of chocolates. Kate was much admired. She was a picture in her new party frock
                              with her bright hair and rosy cheeks. There were other guests beside ourselves and
                              they were already there having drinks when we arrived. Someone said “What a lovely
                              child!” “Yes” said George with pride, “She’s a Marie Stopes baby.” “Truby King!” said I
                              quickly and firmly, but too late to stop the roar of laughter.

                              Our children played amicably with the C-G’s three, but young George was
                              unusually quiet and surprised me by bringing me his unopened tin of chocolates to keep
                              for him. Normally he is a glutton for sweets. I might have guessed he was sickening for
                              something. That night he vomited and had diarrhoea and has had an upset tummy and a
                              slight temperature ever since.

                              Janey is also ill. She says she has malaria and has taken to her bed. I am dosing
                              her with quinine and hope she will soon be better as I badly need her help. Not only is
                              young George off his food and peevish but Kate has a cold and Ann sore eyes and
                              they all want love and attention. To complicate things it has been raining heavily and I
                              must entertain the children indoors.

                              Eleanor.

                              Itewe, Chunya 19th January 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              So sorry I have not written before but we have been in the wars and I have had neither
                              the time nor the heart to write. However the worst is now over. Young George and
                              Janey are both recovering from Typhoid Fever. The doctor had Janey moved to the
                              native hospital at Chunya but I nursed young George here in the camp.

                              As I told you young George’s tummy trouble started on Christmas day. At first I
                              thought it was only a protracted bilious attack due to eating too much unaccustomed rich
                              food and treated him accordingly but when his temperature persisted I thought that the
                              trouble might be malaria and kept him in bed and increased the daily dose of quinine.
                              He ate less and less as the days passed and on New Years Day he seemed very
                              weak and his stomach tender to the touch.

                              George fetched the doctor who examined small George and said he had a very
                              large liver due no doubt to malaria. He gave the child injections of emertine and quinine
                              and told me to give young George frequent and copious drinks of water and bi-carb of
                              soda. This was more easily said than done. Young George refused to drink this mixture
                              and vomited up the lime juice and water the doctor had suggested as an alternative.
                              The doctor called every day and gave George further injections and advised me
                              to give him frequent sips of water from a spoon. After three days the child was very
                              weak and weepy but Dr Spiers still thought he had malaria. During those anxious days I
                              also worried about Janey who appeared to be getting worse rather that better and on
                              January the 3rd I asked the doctor to look at her. The next thing I knew, the doctor had
                              put Janey in his car and driven her off to hospital. When he called next morning he
                              looked very grave and said he wished to talk to my husband. I said that George was out
                              on the claim but if what he wished to say concerned young George’s condition he might
                              just as well tell me.

                              With a good deal of reluctance Dr Spiers then told me that Janey showed all the
                              symptoms of Typhoid Fever and that he was very much afraid that young George had
                              contracted it from her. He added that George should be taken to the Mbeya Hospital
                              where he could have the professional nursing so necessary in typhoid cases. I said “Oh
                              no,I’d never allow that. The child had never been away from his family before and it
                              would frighten him to death to be sick and alone amongst strangers.” Also I was sure that
                              the fifty mile drive over the mountains in his weak condition would harm him more than
                              my amateur nursing would. The doctor returned to the camp that afternoon to urge
                              George to send our son to hospital but George staunchly supported my argument that
                              young George would stand a much better chance of recovery if we nursed him at home.
                              I must say Dr Spiers took our refusal very well and gave young George every attention
                              coming twice a day to see him.

                              For some days the child was very ill. He could not keep down any food or liquid
                              in any quantity so all day long, and when he woke at night, I gave him a few drops of
                              water at a time from a teaspoon. His only nourishment came from sucking Macintosh’s
                              toffees. Young George sweated copiously especially at night when it was difficult to
                              change his clothes and sponge him in the draughty room with the rain teeming down
                              outside. I think I told you that the bedroom is a sort of shed with only openings in the wall
                              for windows and doors, and with one wall built only a couple of feet high leaving a six
                              foot gap for air and light. The roof leaked and the damp air blew in but somehow young
                              George pulled through.

                              Only when he was really on the mend did the doctor tell us that whilst he had
                              been attending George, he had also been called in to attend to another little boy of the same age who also had typhoid. He had been called in too late and the other little boy,
                              an only child, had died. Young George, thank God, is convalescent now, though still on a
                              milk diet. He is cheerful enough when he has company but very peevish when left
                              alone. Poor little lad, he is all hair, eyes, and teeth, or as Ann says” Georgie is all ribs ribs
                              now-a-days Mummy.” He shares my room, Ann and Kate are together in the little room.
                              Anyway the doctor says he should be up and around in about a week or ten days time.
                              We were all inoculated against typhoid on the day the doctor made the diagnosis
                              so it is unlikely that any of us will develop it. Dr Spiers was most impressed by Ann’s
                              unconcern when she was inoculated. She looks gentle and timid but has always been
                              very brave. Funny thing when young George was very ill he used to wail if I left the
                              room, but now that he is convalescent he greatly prefers his dad’s company. So now I
                              have been able to take the girls for walks in the late afternoons whilst big George
                              entertains small George. This he does with the minimum of effort, either he gets out
                              cartons of ammunition with which young George builds endless forts, or else he just sits
                              beside the bed and cleans one of his guns whilst small George watches with absorbed
                              attention.

                              The Doctor tells us that Janey is also now convalescent. He says that exhusband
                              Abel has been most attentive and appeared daily at the hospital with a tray of
                              food that made his, the doctor’s, mouth water. All I dare say, pinched from Mrs
                              Cresswell-George.

                              I’ll write again soon. Lots of love to all,
                              Eleanor.

                              Chunya 29th January 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              Georgie is up and about but still tires very easily. At first his legs were so weak
                              that George used to carry him around on his shoulders. The doctor says that what the
                              child really needs is a long holiday out of the Tropics so that Mrs Thomas’ offer, to pay all
                              our fares to Cape Town as well as lending us her seaside cottage for a month, came as
                              a Godsend. Luckily my passport is in order. When George was in Mbeya he booked
                              seats for the children and me on the first available plane. We will fly to Broken Hill and go
                              on to Cape Town from there by train.

                              Ann and George are wildly thrilled at the idea of flying but I am not. I remember
                              only too well how airsick I was on the old Hannibal when I flew home with the baby Ann.
                              I am longing to see you all and it will be heaven to give the children their first seaside
                              holiday.

                              I mean to return with Kate after three months but, if you will have him, I shall leave
                              George behind with you for a year. You said you would all be delighted to have Ann so
                              I do hope you will also be happy to have young George. Together they are no trouble
                              at all. They amuse themselves and are very independent and loveable.
                              George and I have discussed the matter taking into consideration the letters from
                              you and George’s Mother on the subject. If you keep Ann and George for a year, my
                              mother-in-law will go to Cape Town next year and fetch them. They will live in England
                              with her until they are fit enough to return to the Tropics. After the children and I have left
                              on this holiday, George will be able to move around and look for a job that will pay
                              sufficiently to enable us to go to England in a few years time to fetch our children home.
                              We both feel very sad at the prospect of this parting but the children’s health
                              comes before any other consideration. I hope Kate will stand up better to the Tropics.
                              She is plump and rosy and could not look more bonny if she lived in a temperate
                              climate.

                              We should be with you in three weeks time!

                              Very much love,
                              Eleanor.

                              Broken Hill, N Rhodesia 11th February 1937

                              Dearest Family,

                              Well here we are safe and sound at the Great Northern Hotel, Broken Hill, all
                              ready to board the South bound train tonight.

                              We were still on the diggings on Ann’s birthday, February 8th, when George had
                              a letter from Mbeya to say that our seats were booked on the plane leaving Mbeya on
                              the 10th! What a rush we had packing up. Ann was in bed with malaria so we just
                              bundled her up in blankets and set out in John Molteno’s car for the farm. We arrived that
                              night and spent the next day on the farm sorting things out. Ann and George wanted to
                              take so many of their treasures and it was difficult for them to make a small selection. In
                              the end young George’s most treasured possession, his sturdy little boots, were left
                              behind.

                              Before leaving home on the morning of the tenth I took some snaps of Ann and
                              young George in the garden and one of them with their father. He looked so sad. After
                              putting us on the plane, George planned to go to the fishing camp for a day or two
                              before returning to the empty house on the farm.

                              John Molteno returned from the Cape by plane just before we took off, so he
                              will take over the running of his claims once more. I told John that I dreaded the plane trip
                              on account of air sickness so he gave me two pills which I took then and there. Oh dear!
                              How I wished later that I had not done so. We had an extremely bumpy trip and
                              everyone on the plane was sick except for small George who loved every moment.
                              Poor Ann had a dreadful time but coped very well and never complained. I did not
                              actually puke until shortly before we landed at Broken Hill but felt dreadfully ill all the way.
                              Kate remained rosy and cheerful almost to the end. She sat on my lap throughout the
                              trip because, being under age, she travelled as baggage and was not entitled to a seat.
                              Shortly before we reached Broken Hill a smartly dressed youngish man came up
                              to me and said, “You look so poorly, please let me take the baby, I have children of my
                              own and know how to handle them.” Kate made no protest and off they went to the
                              back of the plane whilst I tried to relax and concentrate on not getting sick. However,
                              within five minutes the man was back. Kate had been thoroughly sick all over his collar
                              and jacket.

                              I took Kate back on my lap and then was violently sick myself, so much so that
                              when we touched down at Broken Hill I was unable to speak to the Immigration Officer.
                              He was so kind. He sat beside me until I got my diaphragm under control and then
                              drove me up to the hotel in his own car.

                              We soon recovered of course and ate a hearty dinner. This morning after
                              breakfast I sallied out to look for a Bank where I could exchange some money into
                              Rhodesian and South African currency and for the Post Office so that I could telegraph
                              to George and to you. What a picnic that trip was! It was a terribly hot day and there was
                              no shade. By the time we had done our chores, the children were hot, and cross, and
                              tired and so indeed was I. As I had no push chair for Kate I had to carry her and she is
                              pretty heavy for eighteen months. George, who is still not strong, clung to my free arm
                              whilst Ann complained bitterly that no one was helping her.

                              Eventually Ann simply sat down on the pavement and declared that she could
                              not go another step, whereupon George of course decided that he also had reached his
                              limit and sat down too. Neither pleading no threats would move them so I had to resort
                              to bribery and had to promise that when we reached the hotel they could have cool
                              drinks and ice-cream. This promise got the children moving once more but I am determined that nothing will induce me to stir again until the taxi arrives to take us to the
                              station.

                              This letter will go by air and will reach you before we do. How I am longing for
                              journeys end.

                              With love to you all,
                              Eleanor.

                              Leaving home 10th February 1937,  George Gilman Rushby with Ann and Georgie (Mike) Rushby:

                              George Rushby Ann and Georgie

                              NOTE
                              We had a very warm welcome to the family home at Plumstead Cape Town.
                              After ten days with my family we moved to Hout Bay where Mrs Thomas lent us her
                              delightful seaside cottage. She also provided us with two excellent maids so I had
                              nothing to do but rest and play on the beach with the children.

                              After a month at the sea George had fully recovered his health though not his
                              former gay spirits. After another six months with my parents I set off for home with Kate,
                              leaving Ann and George in my parent’s home under the care of my elder sister,
                              Marjorie.

                              One or two incidents during that visit remain clearly in my memory. Our children
                              had never met elderly people and were astonished at the manifestations of age. One
                              morning an elderly lady came around to collect church dues. She was thin and stooped
                              and Ann surveyed her with awe. She turned to me with a puzzled expression and
                              asked in her clear voice, “Mummy, why has that old lady got a moustache – oh and a
                              beard?’ The old lady in question was very annoyed indeed and said, “What a rude little
                              girl.” Ann could not understand this, she said, “But Mummy, I only said she had a
                              moustache and a beard and she has.” So I explained as best I could that when people
                              have defects of this kind they are hurt if anyone mentions them.

                              A few days later a strange young woman came to tea. I had been told that she
                              had a most disfiguring birthmark on her cheek and warned Ann that she must not
                              comment on it. Alas! with the kindest intentions Ann once again caused me acute
                              embarrassment. The young woman was hardly seated when Ann went up to her and
                              gently patted the disfiguring mark saying sweetly, “Oh, I do like this horrible mark on your
                              face.”

                              I remember also the afternoon when Kate and George were christened. My
                              mother had given George a white silk shirt for the occasion and he wore it with intense
                              pride. Kate was baptised first without incident except that she was lost in admiration of a
                              gold bracelet given her that day by her Godmother and exclaimed happily, “My
                              bangle, look my bangle,” throughout the ceremony. When George’s turn came the
                              clergyman held his head over the font and poured water on George’s forehead. Some
                              splashed on his shirt and George protested angrily, “Mum, he has wet my shirt!” over
                              and over again whilst I led him hurriedly outside.

                              My last memory of all is at the railway station. The time had come for Kate and
                              me to get into our compartment. My sisters stood on the platform with Ann and George.
                              Ann was resigned to our going, George was not so, at the last moment Sylvia, my
                              younger sister, took him off to see the engine. The whistle blew and I said good-bye to
                              my gallant little Ann. “Mummy”, she said urgently to me, “Don’t forget to wave to
                              George.”

                              And so I waved good-bye to my children, never dreaming that a war would
                              intervene and it would be eight long years before I saw them again.

                              #6262
                              TracyTracy
                              Participant

                                From Tanganyika with Love

                                continued  ~ part 3

                                With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                Mchewe Estate. 22nd March 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                I am feeling much better now that I am five months pregnant and have quite got
                                my appetite back. Once again I go out with “the Mchewe Hunt” which is what George
                                calls the procession made up of the donkey boy and donkey with Ann confidently riding
                                astride, me beside the donkey with Georgie behind riding the stick which he much
                                prefers to the donkey. The Alsatian pup, whom Ann for some unknown reason named
                                ‘Tubbage’, and the two cats bring up the rear though sometimes Tubbage rushes
                                ahead and nearly knocks me off my feet. He is not the loveable pet that Kelly was.
                                It is just as well that I have recovered my health because my mother-in-law has
                                decided to fly out from England to look after Ann and George when I am in hospital. I am
                                very grateful for there is no one lse to whom I can turn. Kath Hickson-Wood is seldom on
                                their farm because Hicky is working a guano claim and is making quite a good thing out of
                                selling bat guano to the coffee farmers at Mbosi. They camp out at the claim, a series of
                                caves in the hills across the valley and visit the farm only occasionally. Anne Molteno is
                                off to Cape Town to have her baby at her mothers home and there are no women in
                                Mbeya I know well. The few women are Government Officials wives and they come
                                and go. I make so few trips to the little town that there is no chance to get on really
                                friendly terms with them.

                                Janey, the ayah, is turning into a treasure. She washes and irons well and keeps
                                the children’s clothes cupboard beautifully neat. Ann and George however are still
                                reluctant to go for walks with her. They find her dull because, like all African ayahs, she
                                has no imagination and cannot play with them. She should however be able to help with
                                the baby. Ann is very excited about the new baby. She so loves all little things.
                                Yesterday she went into ecstasies over ten newly hatched chicks.

                                She wants a little sister and perhaps it would be a good thing. Georgie is so very
                                active and full of mischief that I feel another wild little boy might be more than I can
                                manage. Although Ann is older, it is Georgie who always thinks up the mischief. They
                                have just been having a fight. Georgie with the cooks umbrella versus Ann with her frilly
                                pink sunshade with the inevitable result that the sunshade now has four broken ribs.
                                Any way I never feel lonely now during the long hours George is busy on the
                                shamba. The children keep me on my toes and I have plenty of sewing to do for the
                                baby. George is very good about amusing the children before their bedtime and on
                                Sundays. In the afternoons when it is not wet I take Ann and Georgie for a walk down
                                the hill. George meets us at the bottom and helps me on the homeward journey. He
                                grabs one child in each hand by the slack of their dungarees and they do a sort of giant
                                stride up the hill, half walking half riding.

                                Very much love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 14th June 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                A great flap here. We had a letter yesterday to say that mother-in-law will be
                                arriving in four days time! George is very amused at my frantic efforts at spring cleaning
                                but he has told me before that she is very house proud so I feel I must make the best
                                of what we have.

                                George is very busy building a store for the coffee which will soon be ripening.
                                This time he is doing the bricklaying himself. It is quite a big building on the far end of the
                                farm and close to the river. He is also making trays of chicken wire nailed to wooden
                                frames with cheap calico stretched over the wire.

                                Mother will have to sleep in the verandah room which leads off the bedroom
                                which we share with the children. George will have to sleep in the outside spare room as
                                there is no door between the bedroom and the verandah room. I am sewing frantically
                                to make rose coloured curtains and bedspread out of material mother-in-law sent for
                                Christmas and will have to make a curtain for the doorway. The kitchen badly needs
                                whitewashing but George says he cannot spare the labour so I hope mother won’t look.
                                To complicate matters, George has been invited to lunch with the Governor on the day
                                of Mother’s arrival. After lunch they are to visit the newly stocked trout streams in the
                                Mporotos. I hope he gets back to Mbeya in good time to meet mother’s plane.
                                Ann has been off colour for a week. She looks very pale and her pretty fair hair,
                                normally so shiny, is dull and lifeless. It is such a pity that mother should see her like this
                                because first impressions do count so much and I am looking to the children to attract
                                attention from me. I am the size of a circus tent and hardly a dream daughter-in-law.
                                Georgie, thank goodness, is blooming but he has suddenly developed a disgusting
                                habit of spitting on the floor in the manner of the natives. I feel he might say “Gran, look
                                how far I can spit and give an enthusiastic demonstration.

                                Just hold thumbs that all goes well.

                                your loving but anxious,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 28th June 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                Mother-in-law duly arrived in the District Commissioner’s car. George did not dare
                                to use the A.C. as she is being very temperamental just now. They also brought the
                                mail bag which contained a parcel of lovely baby clothes from you. Thank you very
                                much. Mother-in-law is very put out because the large parcel she posted by surface
                                mail has not yet arrived.

                                Mother arrived looking very smart in an ankle length afternoon frock of golden
                                brown crepe and smart hat, and wearing some very good rings. She is a very
                                handsome woman with the very fair complexion that goes with red hair. The hair, once
                                Titan, must now be grey but it has been very successfully tinted and set. I of course,
                                was shapeless in a cotton maternity frock and no credit to you. However, so far, motherin-
                                law has been uncritical and friendly and charmed with the children who have taken to
                                her. Mother does not think that the children resemble me in any way. Ann resembles her
                                family the Purdys and Georgie is a Morley, her mother’s family. She says they had the
                                same dark eyes and rather full mouths. I say feebly, “But Georgie has my colouring”, but
                                mother won’t hear of it. So now you know! Ann is a Purdy and Georgie a Morley.
                                Perhaps number three will be a Leslie.

                                What a scramble I had getting ready for mother. Her little room really looks pretty
                                and fresh, but the locally woven grass mats arrived only minutes before mother did. I
                                also frantically overhauled our clothes and it a good thing that I did so because mother
                                has been going through all the cupboards looking for mending. Mother is kept so busy
                                in her own home that I think she finds time hangs on her hands here. She is very good at
                                entertaining the children and has even tried her hand at picking coffee a couple of times.
                                Mother cannot get used to the native boy servants but likes Janey, so Janey keeps her
                                room in order. Mother prefers to wash and iron her own clothes.

                                I almost lost our cook through mother’s surplus energy! Abel our previous cook
                                took a new wife last month and, as the new wife, and Janey the old, were daggers
                                drawn, Abel moved off to a job on the Lupa leaving Janey and her daughter here.
                                The new cook is capable, but he is a fearsome looking individual called Alfani. He has a
                                thick fuzz of hair which he wears long, sometimes hidden by a dingy turban, and he
                                wears big brass earrings. I think he must be part Somali because he has a hawk nose
                                and a real Brigand look. His kitchen is never really clean but he is an excellent cook and
                                as cooks are hard to come by here I just keep away from the kitchen. Not so mother!
                                A few days after her arrival she suggested kindly that I should lie down after lunch
                                so I rested with the children whilst mother, unknown to me, went out to the kitchen and
                                not only scrubbed the table and shelves but took the old iron stove to pieces and
                                cleaned that. Unfortunately in her zeal she poked a hole through the stove pipe.
                                Had I known of these activities I would have foreseen the cook’s reaction when
                                he returned that evening to cook the supper. he was furious and wished to leave on the
                                spot and demanded his wages forthwith. The old Memsahib had insulted him by
                                scrubbing his already spotless kitchen and had broken his stove and made it impossible
                                for him to cook. This tirade was accompanied by such waving of hands and rolling of
                                eyes that I longed to sack him on the spot. However I dared not as I might not get
                                another cook for weeks. So I smoothed him down and he patched up the stove pipe
                                with a bit of tin and some wire and produced a good meal. I am wondering what
                                transformations will be worked when I am in hospital.

                                Our food is really good but mother just pecks at it. No wonder really, because
                                she has had some shocks. One day she found the kitchen boy diligently scrubbing the box lavatory seat with a scrubbing brush which he dipped into one of my best large
                                saucepans! No one can foresee what these boys will do. In these remote areas house
                                servants are usually recruited from the ranks of the very primitive farm labourers, who first
                                come to the farm as naked savages, and their notions of hygiene simply don’t exist.
                                One day I said to mother in George’s presence “When we were newly married,
                                mother, George used to brag about your cooking and say that you would run a home
                                like this yourself with perhaps one ‘toto’. Mother replied tartly, “That was very bad of
                                George and not true. If my husband had brought me out here I would not have stayed a
                                month. I think you manage very well.” Which reply made me warm to mother a lot.
                                To complicate things we have a new pup, a little white bull terrier bitch whom
                                George has named Fanny. She is tiny and not yet house trained but seems a plucky
                                and attractive little animal though there is no denying that she does look like a piglet.

                                Very much love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 3rd August 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                Here I am in hospital, comfortably in bed with our new daughter in her basket
                                beside me. She is a lovely little thing, very plump and cuddly and pink and white and
                                her head is covered with tiny curls the colour of Golden Syrup. We meant to call her
                                Margery Kate, after our Marj and my mother-in-law whose name is Catherine.
                                I am enjoying the rest, knowing that George and mother will be coping
                                successfully on the farm. My room is full of flowers, particularly with the roses and
                                carnations which grow so well here. Kate was not due until August 5th but the doctor
                                wanted me to come in good time in view of my tiresome early pregnancy.

                                For weeks beforehand George had tinkered with the A.C. and we started for
                                Mbeya gaily enough on the twenty ninth, however, after going like a dream for a couple
                                of miles, she simply collapsed from exhaustion at the foot of a hill and all the efforts of
                                the farm boys who had been sent ahead for such an emergency failed to start her. So
                                George sent back to the farm for the machila and I sat in the shade of a tree, wondering
                                what would happen if I had the baby there and then, whilst George went on tinkering
                                with the car. Suddenly she sprang into life and we roared up that hill and all the way into
                                Mbeya. The doctor welcomed us pleasantly and we had tea with his family before I
                                settled into my room. Later he examined me and said that it was unlikely that the baby
                                would be born for several days. The new and efficient German nurse said, “Thank
                                goodness for that.” There was a man in hospital dying from a stomach cancer and she
                                had not had a decent nights sleep for three nights.

                                Kate however had other plans. I woke in the early morning with labour pains but
                                anxious not to disturb the nurse, I lay and read or tried to read a book, hoping that I
                                would not have to call the nurse until daybreak. However at four a.m., I went out into the
                                wind which was howling along the open verandah and knocked on the nurse’s door. She
                                got up and very crossly informed me that I was imagining things and should get back to
                                bed at once. She said “It cannot be so. The Doctor has said it.” I said “Of course it is,”
                                and then and there the water broke and clinched my argument. She then went into a flat
                                spin. “But the bed is not ready and my instruments are not ready,” and she flew around
                                to rectify this and also sent an African orderly to call the doctor. I paced the floor saying
                                warningly “Hurry up with that bed. I am going to have the baby now!” She shrieked
                                “Take off your dressing gown.” But I was passed caring. I flung myself on the bed and
                                there was Kate. The nurse had done all that was necessary by the time the doctor
                                arrived.

                                A funny thing was, that whilst Kate was being born on the bed, a black cat had
                                kittens under it! The doctor was furious with the nurse but the poor thing must have crept
                                in out of the cold wind when I went to call the nurse. A happy omen I feel for the baby’s
                                future. George had no anxiety this time. He stayed at the hospital with me until ten
                                o’clock when he went down to the hotel to sleep and he received the news in a note
                                from me with his early morning tea. He went to the farm next morning but will return on
                                the sixth to fetch me home.

                                I do feel so happy. A very special husband and three lovely children. What
                                more could anyone possibly want.

                                Lots and lots of love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 20th August 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                Well here we are back at home and all is very well. The new baby is very placid
                                and so pretty. Mother is delighted with her and Ann loved her at sight but Georgie is not
                                so sure. At first he said, “Your baby is no good. Chuck her in the kalonga.” The kalonga
                                being the ravine beside the house , where, I regret to say, much of the kitchen refuse is
                                dumped. he is very jealous when I carry Kate around or feed her but is ready to admire
                                her when she is lying alone in her basket.

                                George walked all the way from the farm to fetch us home. He hired a car and
                                native driver from the hotel, but drove us home himself going with such care over ruts
                                and bumps. We had a great welcome from mother who had had the whole house
                                spring cleaned. However George loyally says it looks just as nice when I am in charge.
                                Mother obviously, had had more than enough of the back of beyond and
                                decided to stay on only one week after my return home. She had gone into the kitchen
                                one day just in time to see the houseboy scooping the custard he had spilt on the table
                                back into the jug with the side of his hand. No doubt it would have been served up
                                without a word. On another occasion she had walked in on the cook’s daily ablutions. He
                                was standing in a small bowl of water in the centre of the kitchen, absolutely naked,
                                enjoying a slipper bath. She left last Wednesday and gave us a big laugh before she
                                left. She never got over her horror of eating food prepared by our cook and used to
                                push it around her plate. Well, when the time came for mother to leave for the plane, she
                                put on the very smart frock in which she had arrived, and then came into the sitting room
                                exclaiming in dismay “Just look what has happened, I must have lost a stone!’ We
                                looked, and sure enough, the dress which had been ankle deep before, now touched
                                the floor. “Good show mother.” said George unfeelingly. “You ought to be jolly grateful,
                                you needed to lose weight and it would have cost you the earth at a beauty parlour to
                                get that sylph-like figure.”

                                When mother left she took, in a perforated matchbox, one of the frilly mantis that
                                live on our roses. She means to keep it in a goldfish bowl in her dining room at home.
                                Georgie and Ann filled another matchbox with dead flies for food for the mantis on the
                                journey.

                                Now that mother has left, Georgie and Ann attach themselves to me and firmly
                                refuse to have anything to do with the ayah,Janey. She in any case now wishes to have
                                a rest. Mother tipped her well and gave her several cotton frocks so I suspect she wants
                                to go back to her hometown in Northern Rhodesia to show off a bit.
                                Georgie has just sidled up with a very roguish look. He asked “You like your
                                baby?” I said “Yes indeed I do.” He said “I’ll prick your baby with a velly big thorn.”

                                Who would be a mother!
                                Eleanor

                                Mchewe Estate. 20th September 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                I have been rather in the wars with toothache and as there is still no dentist at
                                Mbeya to do the fillings, I had to have four molars extracted at the hospital. George
                                says it is fascinating to watch me at mealtimes these days because there is such a gleam
                                of satisfaction in my eye when I do manage to get two teeth to meet on a mouthful.
                                About those scissors Marj sent Ann. It was not such a good idea. First she cut off tufts of
                                George’s hair so that he now looks like a bad case of ringworm and then she cut a scalp
                                lock, a whole fist full of her own shining hair, which George so loves. George scolded
                                Ann and she burst into floods of tears. Such a thing as a scolding from her darling daddy
                                had never happened before. George immediately made a long drooping moustache
                                out of the shorn lock and soon had her smiling again. George is always very gentle with
                                Ann. One has to be , because she is frightfully sensitive to criticism.

                                I am kept pretty busy these days, Janey has left and my houseboy has been ill
                                with pneumonia. I now have to wash all the children’s things and my own, (the cook does
                                George’s clothes) and look after the three children. Believe me, I can hardly keep awake
                                for Kate’s ten o’clock feed.

                                I do hope I shall get some new servants next month because I also got George
                                to give notice to the cook. I intercepted him last week as he was storming down the hill
                                with my large kitchen knife in his hand. “Where are you going with my knife?” I asked.
                                “I’m going to kill a man!” said Alfani, rolling his eyes and looking extremely ferocious. “He
                                has taken my wife.” “Not with my knife”, said I reaching for it. So off Alfani went, bent on
                                vengeance and I returned the knife to the kitchen. Dinner was served and I made no
                                enquiries but I feel that I need someone more restful in the kitchen than our brigand
                                Alfani.

                                George has been working on the car and has now fitted yet another radiator. This
                                is a lorry one and much too tall to be covered by the A.C.’s elegant bonnet which is
                                secured by an old strap. The poor old A.C. now looks like an ancient shoe with a turned
                                up toe. It only needs me in it with the children to make a fine illustration to the old rhyme!
                                Ann and Georgie are going through a climbing phase. They practically live in
                                trees. I rushed out this morning to investigate loud screams and found Georgie hanging
                                from a fork in a tree by one ankle, whilst Ann stood below on tiptoe with hands stretched
                                upwards to support his head.

                                Do I sound as though I have straws in my hair? I have.
                                Lots of love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 11th October 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                Thank goodness! I have a new ayah name Mary. I had heard that there was a
                                good ayah out of work at Tukuyu 60 miles away so sent a messenger to fetch her. She
                                arrived after dark wearing a bright dress and a cheerful smile and looked very suitable by
                                the light of a storm lamp. I was horrified next morning to see her in daylight. She was
                                dressed all in black and had a rather sinister look. She reminds me rather of your old maid
                                Candace who overheard me laughing a few days before Ann was born and croaked
                                “Yes , Miss Eleanor, today you laugh but next week you might be dead.” Remember
                                how livid you were, dad?

                                I think Mary has the same grim philosophy. Ann took one look at her and said,
                                “What a horrible old lady, mummy.” Georgie just said “Go away”, both in English and Ki-
                                Swahili. Anyway Mary’s references are good so I shall keep her on to help with Kate
                                who is thriving and bonny and placid.

                                Thank you for the offer of toys for Christmas but, if you don’t mind, I’d rather have
                                some clothing for the children. Ann is quite contented with her dolls Barbara and Yvonne.
                                Barbara’s once beautiful face is now pieced together like a jigsaw puzzle having come
                                into contact with Georgie’s ever busy hammer. However Ann says she will love her for
                                ever and she doesn’t want another doll. Yvonne’s hay day is over too. She
                                disappeared for weeks and we think Fanny, the pup, was the culprit. Ann discovered
                                Yvonne one morning in some long wet weeds. Poor Yvonne is now a ghost of her
                                former self. All the sophisticated make up was washed off her papier-mâché face and
                                her hair is decidedly bedraggled, but Ann was radiant as she tucked her back into bed
                                and Yvonne is as precious to Ann as she ever was.

                                Georgie simply does not care for toys. His paint box, hammer and the trenching
                                hoe George gave him for his second birthday are all he wants or needs. Both children
                                love books but I sometimes wonder whether they stimulate Ann’s imagination too much.
                                The characters all become friends of hers and she makes up stories about them to tell
                                Georgie. She adores that illustrated children’s Bible Mummy sent her but you would be
                                astonished at the yarns she spins about “me and my friend Jesus.” She also will call
                                Moses “Old Noses”, and looking at a picture of Jacob’s dream, with the shining angels
                                on the ladder between heaven and earth, she said “Georgie, if you see an angel, don’t
                                touch it, it’s hot.”

                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 17th October 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                I take back the disparaging things I said about my new Ayah, because she has
                                proved her worth in an unexpected way. On Wednesday morning I settled Kate in he
                                cot after her ten o’clock feed and sat sewing at the dining room table with Ann and
                                Georgie opposite me, both absorbed in painting pictures in identical seed catalogues.
                                Suddenly there was a terrific bang on the back door, followed by an even heavier blow.
                                The door was just behind me and I got up and opened it. There, almost filling the door
                                frame, stood a huge native with staring eyes and his teeth showing in a mad grimace. In
                                his hand he held a rolled umbrella by the ferrule, the shaft I noticed was unusually long
                                and thick and the handle was a big round knob.

                                I was terrified as you can imagine, especially as, through the gap under the
                                native’s raised arm, I could see the new cook and the kitchen boy running away down to
                                the shamba! I hastily tried to shut and lock the door but the man just brushed me aside.
                                For a moment he stood over me with the umbrella raised as though to strike. Rather
                                fortunately, I now think, I was too petrified to say a word. The children never moved but
                                Tubbage, the Alsatian, got up and jumped out of the window!

                                Then the native turned away and still with the same fixed stare and grimace,
                                began to attack the furniture with his umbrella. Tables and chairs were overturned and
                                books and ornaments scattered on the floor. When the madman had his back turned and
                                was busily bashing the couch, I slipped round the dining room table, took Ann and
                                Georgie by the hand and fled through the front door to the garage where I hid the
                                children in the car. All this took several minutes because naturally the children were
                                terrified. I was worried to death about the baby left alone in the bedroom and as soon
                                as I had Ann and Georgie settled I ran back to the house.

                                I reached the now open front door just as Kianda the houseboy opened the back
                                door of the lounge. He had been away at the river washing clothes but, on hearing of the
                                madman from the kitchen boy he had armed himself with a stout stick and very pluckily,
                                because he is not a robust boy, had returned to the house to eject the intruder. He
                                rushed to attack immediately and I heard a terrific exchange of blows behind me as I
                                opened our bedroom door. You can imagine what my feelings were when I was
                                confronted by an empty cot! Just then there was an uproar inside as all the farm
                                labourers armed with hoes and pangas and sticks, streamed into the living room from the
                                shamba whence they had been summoned by the cook. In no time at all the huge
                                native was hustled out of the house, flung down the front steps, and securely tied up
                                with strips of cloth.

                                In the lull that followed I heard a frightened voice calling from the bathroom.
                                ”Memsahib is that you? The child is here with me.” I hastily opened the bathroom door
                                to find Mary couched in a corner by the bath, shielding Kate with her body. Mary had
                                seen the big native enter the house and her first thought had been for her charge. I
                                thanked her and promised her a reward for her loyalty, and quickly returned to the garage
                                to reassure Ann and Georgie. I met George who looked white and exhausted as well
                                he might having run up hill all the way from the coffee store. The kitchen boy had led him
                                to expect the worst and he was most relieved to find us all unhurt if a bit shaken.
                                We returned to the house by the back way whilst George went to the front and
                                ordered our labourers to take their prisoner and lock him up in the store. George then
                                discussed the whole affair with his Headman and all the labourers after which he reported
                                to me. “The boys say that the bastard is an ex-Askari from Nyasaland. He is not mad as
                                you thought but he smokes bhang and has these attacks. I suppose I should take him to
                                Mbeya and have him up in court. But if I do that you’ll have to give evidence and that will be a nuisance as the car won’t go and there is also the baby to consider.”

                                Eventually we decided to leave the man to sleep off the effects of the Bhang
                                until evening when he would be tried before an impromptu court consisting of George,
                                the local Jumbe(Headman) and village Elders, and our own farm boys and any other
                                interested spectators. It was not long before I knew the verdict because I heard the
                                sound of lashes. I was not sorry at all because I felt the man deserved his punishment
                                and so did all the Africans. They love children and despise anyone who harms or
                                frightens them. With great enthusiasm they frog-marched him off our land, and I sincerely
                                hope that that is the last we see or him. Ann and Georgie don’t seem to brood over this
                                affair at all. The man was naughty and he was spanked, a quite reasonable state of
                                affairs. This morning they hid away in the small thatched chicken house. This is a little brick
                                building about four feet square which Ann covets as a dolls house. They came back
                                covered in stick fleas which I had to remove with paraffin. My hens are laying well but
                                they all have the ‘gapes’! I wouldn’t run a chicken farm for anything, hens are such fussy,
                                squawking things.

                                Now don’t go worrying about my experience with the native. Such things
                                happen only once in a lifetime. We are all very well and happy, and life, apart from the
                                children’s pranks is very tranquil.

                                Lots and lots of love,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 25th October 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                The hot winds have dried up the shamba alarmingly and we hope every day for
                                rain. The prices for coffee, on the London market, continue to be low and the local
                                planters are very depressed. Coffee grows well enough here but we are over 400
                                miles from the railway and transport to the railhead by lorry is very expensive. Then, as
                                there is no East African Marketing Board, the coffee must be shipped to England for
                                sale. Unless the coffee fetches at least 90 pounds a ton it simply doesn’t pay to grow it.
                                When we started planting in 1931 coffee was fetching as much as 115 pounds a ton but
                                prices this year were between 45 and 55 pounds. We have practically exhausted our
                                capitol and so have all our neighbours. The Hickson -Woods have been keeping their
                                pot boiling by selling bat guano to the coffee farmers at Mbosi but now everyone is
                                broke and there is not a market for fertilisers. They are offering their farm for sale at a very
                                low price.

                                Major Jones has got a job working on the district roads and Max Coster talks of
                                returning to his work as a geologist. George says he will have to go gold digging on the
                                Lupa unless there is a big improvement in the market. Luckily we can live quite cheaply
                                here. We have a good vegetable garden, milk is cheap and we have plenty of fruit.
                                There are mulberries, pawpaws, grenadillas, peaches, and wine berries. The wine
                                berries are very pretty but insipid though Ann and Georgie love them. Each morning,
                                before breakfast, the old garden boy brings berries for Ann and Georgie. With a thorn
                                the old man pins a large leaf from a wild fig tree into a cone which he fills with scarlet wine
                                berries. There is always a cone for each child and they wait eagerly outside for the daily
                                ceremony of presentation.

                                The rats are being a nuisance again. Both our cats, Skinny Winnie and Blackboy
                                disappeared a few weeks ago. We think they made a meal for a leopard. I wrote last
                                week to our grocer at Mbalizi asking him whether he could let us have a couple of kittens
                                as I have often seen cats in his store. The messenger returned with a nailed down box.
                                The kitchen boy was called to prize up the lid and the children stood by in eager
                                anticipation. Out jumped two snarling and spitting creatures. One rushed into the kalonga
                                and the other into the house and before they were captured they had drawn blood from
                                several boys. I told the boys to replace the cats in the box as I intended to return them
                                forthwith. They had the colouring, stripes and dispositions of wild cats and I certainly
                                didn’t want them as pets, but before the boys could replace the lid the cats escaped
                                once more into the undergrowth in the kalonga. George fetched his shotgun and said he
                                would shoot the cats on sight or they would kill our chickens. This was more easily said
                                than done because the cats could not be found. However during the night the cats
                                climbed up into the loft af the house and we could hear them moving around on the reed
                                ceiling.

                                I said to George,”Oh leave the poor things. At least they might frighten the rats
                                away.” That afternoon as we were having tea a thin stream of liquid filtered through the
                                ceiling on George’s head. Oh dear!!! That of course was the end. Some raw meat was
                                put on the lawn for bait and yesterday George shot both cats.

                                I regret to end with the sad story of Mary, heroine in my last letter and outcast in
                                this. She came to work quite drunk two days running and I simply had to get rid of her. I
                                have heard since from Kath Wood that Mary lost her last job at Tukuyu for the same
                                reason. She was ayah to twin girls and one day set their pram on fire.

                                So once again my hands are more than full with three lively children. I did say
                                didn’t I, when Ann was born that I wanted six children?

                                Very much love from us all, Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 8th November 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                To set your minds at rest I must tell you that the native who so frightened me and
                                the children is now in jail for attacking a Greek at Mbalizi. I hear he is to be sent back to
                                Rhodesia when he has finished his sentence.

                                Yesterday we had one of our rare trips to Mbeya. George managed to get a couple of
                                second hand tyres for the old car and had again got her to work so we are celebrating our
                                wedding anniversary by going on an outing. I wore the green and fawn striped silk dress
                                mother bought me and the hat and shoes you sent for my birthday and felt like a million
                                dollars, for a change. The children all wore new clothes too and I felt very proud of them.
                                Ann is still very fair and with her refined little features and straight silky hair she
                                looks like Alice in Wonderland. Georgie is dark and sturdy and looks best in khaki shirt
                                and shorts and sun helmet. Kate is a pink and gold baby and looks good enough to eat.
                                We went straight to the hotel at Mbeya and had the usual warm welcome from
                                Ken and Aunty May Menzies. Aunty May wears her hair cut short like a mans and
                                usually wears shirt and tie and riding breeches and boots. She always looks ready to go
                                on safari at a moments notice as indeed she is. She is often called out to a case of illness
                                at some remote spot.

                                There were lots of people at the hotel from farms in the district and from the
                                diggings. I met women I had not seen for four years. One, a Mrs Masters from Tukuyu,
                                said in the lounge, “My God! Last time I saw you , you were just a girl and here you are
                                now with two children.” To which I replied with pride, “There is another one in a pram on
                                the verandah if you care to look!” Great hilarity in the lounge. The people from the
                                diggings seem to have plenty of money to throw around. There was a big party on the
                                go in the bar.

                                One of our shamba boys died last Friday and all his fellow workers and our
                                house boys had the day off to attend the funeral. From what I can gather the local
                                funerals are quite cheery affairs. The corpse is dressed in his best clothes and laid
                                outside his hut and all who are interested may view the body and pay their respects.
                                The heir then calls upon anyone who had a grudge against the dead man to say his say
                                and thereafter hold his tongue forever. Then all the friends pay tribute to the dead man
                                after which he is buried to the accompaniment of what sounds from a distance, very
                                cheerful keening.

                                Most of our workmen are pagans though there is a Lutheran Mission nearby and
                                a big Roman Catholic Mission in the area too. My present cook, however, claims to be
                                a Christian. He certainly went to a mission school and can read and write and also sing
                                hymns in Ki-Swahili. When I first engaged him I used to find a large open Bible
                                prominently displayed on the kitchen table. The cook is middle aged and arrived here
                                with a sensible matronly wife. To my surprise one day he brought along a young girl,
                                very plump and giggly and announced proudly that she was his new wife, I said,”But I
                                thought you were a Christian Jeremiah? Christians don’t have two wives.” To which he
                                replied, “Oh Memsahib, God won’t mind. He knows an African needs two wives – one
                                to go with him when he goes away to work and one to stay behind at home to cultivate
                                the shamba.

                                Needles to say, it is the old wife who has gone to till the family plot.

                                With love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 21st November 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                The drought has broken with a bang. We had a heavy storm in the hills behind
                                the house. Hail fell thick and fast. So nice for all the tiny new berries on the coffee! The
                                kids loved the excitement and three times Ann and Georgie ran out for a shower under
                                the eaves and had to be changed. After the third time I was fed up and made them both
                                lie on their beds whilst George and I had lunch in peace. I told Ann to keep the
                                casement shut as otherwise the rain would drive in on her bed. Half way through lunch I
                                heard delighted squeals from Georgie and went into the bedroom to investigate. Ann
                                was standing on the outer sill in the rain but had shut the window as ordered. “Well
                                Mummy , you didn’t say I mustn’t stand on the window sill, and I did shut the window.”
                                George is working so hard on the farm. I have a horrible feeling however that it is
                                what the Africans call ‘Kazi buri’ (waste of effort) as there seems no chance of the price of
                                coffee improving as long as this world depression continues. The worry is that our capitol
                                is nearly exhausted. Food is becoming difficult now that our neighbours have left. I used
                                to buy delicious butter from Kath Hickson-Wood and an African butcher used to kill a
                                beast once a week. Now that we are his only European customers he very rarely kills
                                anything larger than a goat, and though we do eat goat, believe me it is not from choice.
                                We have of course got plenty to eat, but our diet is very monotonous. I was
                                delighted when George shot a large bushbuck last week. What we could not use I cut
                                into strips and the salted strips are now hanging in the open garage to dry.

                                With love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 6th December 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                We have had a lot of rain and the countryside is lovely and green. Last week
                                George went to Mbeya taking Ann with him. This was a big adventure for Ann because
                                never before had she been anywhere without me. She was in a most blissful state as
                                she drove off in the old car clutching a little basket containing sandwiches and half a bottle
                                of milk. She looked so pretty in a new blue frock and with her tiny plaits tied with
                                matching blue ribbons. When Ann is animated she looks charming because her normally
                                pale cheeks become rosy and she shows her pretty dimples.

                                As I am still without an ayah I rather looked forward to a quiet morning with only
                                Georgie and Margery Kate to care for, but Georgie found it dull without Ann and wanted
                                to be entertained and even the normally placid baby was peevish. Then in mid morning
                                the rain came down in torrents, the result of a cloudburst in the hills directly behind our
                                house. The ravine next to our house was a terrifying sight. It appeared to be a great
                                muddy, roaring waterfall reaching from the very top of the hill to a point about 30 yards
                                behind our house and then the stream rushed on down the gorge in an angry brown
                                flood. The roar of the water was so great that we had to yell at one another to be heard.
                                By lunch time the rain had stopped and I anxiously awaited the return of Ann and
                                George. They returned on foot, drenched and hungry at about 2.30pm . George had
                                had to abandon the car on the main road as the Mchewe River had overflowed and
                                turned the road into a muddy lake. The lower part of the shamba had also been flooded
                                and the water receded leaving branches and driftwood amongst the coffee. This was my
                                first experience of a real tropical storm. I am afraid that after the battering the coffee has
                                had there is little hope of a decent crop next year.

                                Anyway Christmas is coming so we don’t dwell on these mishaps. The children
                                have already chosen their tree from amongst the young cypresses in the vegetable
                                garden. We all send our love and hope that you too will have a Happy Christmas.

                                Eleanor

                                Mchewe Estate. 22nd December 1935

                                Dearest Family,

                                I’ve been in the wars with my staff. The cook has been away ill for ten days but is
                                back today though shaky and full of self pity. The houseboy, who really has been a brick
                                during the cooks absence has now taken to his bed and I feel like taking to Mine! The
                                children however have the Christmas spirit and are making weird and wonderful paper
                                decorations. George’s contribution was to have the house whitewashed throughout and
                                it looks beautifully fresh.

                                My best bit of news is that my old ayah Janey has been to see me and would
                                like to start working here again on Jan 1st. We are all very well. We meant to give
                                ourselves an outing to Mbeya as a Christmas treat but here there is an outbreak of
                                enteric fever there so will now not go. We have had two visitors from the Diggings this
                                week. The children see so few strangers that they were fascinated and hung around
                                staring. Ann sat down on the arm of the couch beside one and studied his profile.
                                Suddenly she announced in her clear voice, “Mummy do you know, this man has got
                                wax in his ears!” Very awkward pause in the conversation. By the way when I was
                                cleaning out little Kate’s ears with a swab of cotton wool a few days ago, Ann asked
                                “Mummy, do bees have wax in their ears? Well, where do you get beeswax from
                                then?”

                                I meant to keep your Christmas parcel unopened until Christmas Eve but could
                                not resist peeping today. What lovely things! Ann so loves pretties and will be
                                delighted with her frocks. My dress is just right and I love Georgie’s manly little flannel
                                shorts and blue shirt. We have bought them each a watering can. I suppose I shall
                                regret this later. One of your most welcome gifts is the album of nursery rhyme records. I
                                am so fed up with those that we have. Both children love singing. I put a record on the
                                gramophone geared to slow and off they go . Georgie sings more slowly than Ann but
                                much more tunefully. Ann sings in a flat monotone but Georgie with great expression.
                                You ought to hear him render ‘Sing a song of sixpence’. He cannot pronounce an R or
                                an S. Mother has sent a large home made Christmas pudding and a fine Christmas
                                cake and George will shoot some partridges for Christmas dinner.
                                Think of us as I shall certainly think of you.

                                Your very loving,
                                Eleanor.

                                Mchewe Estate. 2nd January 1936

                                Dearest Family,

                                Christmas was fun! The tree looked very gay with its load of tinsel, candles and
                                red crackers and the coloured balloons you sent. All the children got plenty of toys
                                thanks to Grandparents and Aunts. George made Ann a large doll’s bed and I made
                                some elegant bedding, Barbara, the big doll is now permanently bed ridden. Her poor
                                shattered head has come all unstuck and though I have pieced it together again it is a sad
                                sight. If you have not yet chosen a present for her birthday next month would you
                                please get a new head from the Handy House. I enclose measurements. Ann does so
                                love the doll. She always calls her, “My little girl”, and she keeps the doll’s bed beside
                                her own and never fails to kiss her goodnight.

                                We had no guests for Christmas this year but we were quite festive. Ann
                                decorated the dinner table with small pink roses and forget-me-knots and tinsel and the
                                crackers from the tree. It was a wet day but we played the new records and both
                                George and I worked hard to make it a really happy day for the children. The children
                                were hugely delighted when George made himself a revolting set of false teeth out of
                                plasticine and a moustache and beard of paper straw from a chocolate box. “Oh Daddy
                                you look exactly like Father Christmas!” cried an enthralled Ann. Before bedtime we lit
                                all the candles on the tree and sang ‘Away in a Manger’, and then we opened the box of
                                starlights you sent and Ann and Georgie had their first experience of fireworks.
                                After the children went to bed things deteriorated. First George went for his bath
                                and found and killed a large black snake in the bathroom. It must have been in the
                                bathroom when I bathed the children earlier in the evening. Then I developed bad
                                toothache which kept me awake all night and was agonising next day. Unfortunately the
                                bridge between the farm and Mbeya had been washed away and the water was too
                                deep for the car to ford until the 30th when at last I was able to take my poor swollen
                                face to Mbeya. There is now a young German woman dentist working at the hospital.
                                She pulled out the offending molar which had a large abscess attached to it.
                                Whilst the dentist attended to me, Ann and Georgie played happily with the
                                doctor’s children. I wish they could play more often with other children. Dr Eckhardt was
                                very pleased with Margery Kate who at seven months weighs 17 lbs and has lovely
                                rosy cheeks. He admired Ann and told her that she looked just like a German girl. “No I
                                don’t”, cried Ann indignantly, “I’m English!”

                                We were caught in a rain storm going home and as the old car still has no
                                windscreen or side curtains we all got soaked except for the baby who was snugly
                                wrapped in my raincoat. The kids thought it great fun. Ann is growing up fast now. She
                                likes to ‘help mummy’. She is a perfectionist at four years old which is rather trying. She
                                gets so discouraged when things do not turn out as well as she means them to. Sewing
                                is constantly being unpicked and paintings torn up. She is a very sensitive child.
                                Georgie is quite different. He is a man of action, but not silent. He talks incessantly
                                but lisps and stumbles over some words. At one time Ann and Georgie often
                                conversed in Ki-Swahili but they now scorn to do so. If either forgets and uses a Swahili
                                word, the other points a scornful finger and shouts “You black toto”.

                                With love to all,
                                Eleanor.

                                #6261
                                TracyTracy
                                Participant

                                  From Tanganyika with Love

                                  continued

                                  With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 11th July 1931.

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You say that you would like to know more about our neighbours. Well there is
                                  not much to tell. Kath Wood is very good about coming over to see me. I admire her
                                  very much because she is so capable as well as being attractive. She speaks very
                                  fluent Ki-Swahili and I envy her the way she can carry on a long conversation with the
                                  natives. I am very slow in learning the language possibly because Lamek and the
                                  houseboy both speak basic English.

                                  I have very little to do with the Africans apart from the house servants, but I do
                                  run a sort of clinic for the wives and children of our employees. The children suffer chiefly
                                  from sore eyes and worms, and the older ones often have bad ulcers on their legs. All
                                  farmers keep a stock of drugs and bandages.

                                  George also does a bit of surgery and last month sewed up the sole of the foot
                                  of a boy who had trodden on the blade of a panga, a sort of sword the Africans use for
                                  hacking down bush. He made an excellent job of it. George tells me that the Africans
                                  have wonderful powers of recuperation. Once in his bachelor days, one of his men was
                                  disembowelled by an elephant. George washed his “guts” in a weak solution of
                                  pot.permang, put them back in the cavity and sewed up the torn flesh and he
                                  recovered.

                                  But to get back to the neighbours. We see less of Hicky Wood than of Kath.
                                  Hicky can be charming but is often moody as I believe Irishmen often are.
                                  Major Jones is now at home on his shamba, which he leaves from time to time
                                  for temporary jobs on the district roads. He walks across fairly regularly and we are
                                  always glad to see him for he is a great bearer of news. In this part of Africa there is no
                                  knocking or ringing of doorbells. Front doors are always left open and visitors always
                                  welcome. When a visitor approaches a house he shouts “Hodi”, and the owner of the
                                  house yells “Karibu”, which I believe means “Come near” or approach, and tea is
                                  produced in a matter of minutes no matter what hour of the day it is.
                                  The road that passes all our farms is the only road to the Gold Diggings and
                                  diggers often drop in on the Woods and Major Jones and bring news of the Goldfields.
                                  This news is sometimes about gold but quite often about whose wife is living with
                                  whom. This is a great country for gossip.

                                  Major Jones now has his brother Llewyllen living with him. I drove across with
                                  George to be introduced to him. Llewyllen’s health is poor and he looks much older than
                                  his years and very like the portrait of Trader Horn. He has the same emaciated features,
                                  burning eyes and long beard. He is proud of his Welsh tenor voice and often bursts into
                                  song.

                                  Both brothers are excellent conversationalists and George enjoys walking over
                                  sometimes on a Sunday for a bit of masculine company. The other day when George
                                  walked across to visit the Joneses, he found both brothers in the shamba and Llew in a
                                  great rage. They had been stooping to inspect a water furrow when Llew backed into a
                                  hornets nest. One furious hornet stung him on the seat and another on the back of his
                                  neck. Llew leapt forward and somehow his false teeth shot out into the furrow and were
                                  carried along by the water. When George arrived Llew had retrieved his teeth but
                                  George swears that, in the commotion, the heavy leather leggings, which Llew always
                                  wears, had swivelled around on his thin legs and were calves to the front.
                                  George has heard that Major Jones is to sell pert of his land to his Swedish brother-in-law, Max Coster, so we will soon have another couple in the neighbourhood.

                                  I’ve had a bit of a pantomime here on the farm. On the day we went to Tukuyu,
                                  all our washing was stolen from the clothes line and also our new charcoal iron. George
                                  reported the matter to the police and they sent out a plain clothes policeman. He wears
                                  the long white Arab gown called a Kanzu much in vogue here amongst the African elite
                                  but, alas for secrecy, huge black police boots protrude from beneath the Kanzu and, to
                                  add to this revealing clue, the askari springs to attention and salutes each time I pass by.
                                  Not much hope of finding out the identity of the thief I fear.

                                  George’s furrow was entirely successful and we now have water running behind
                                  the kitchen. Our drinking water we get from a lovely little spring on the farm. We boil and
                                  filter it for safety’s sake. I don’t think that is necessary. The furrow water is used for
                                  washing pots and pans and for bath water.

                                  Lots of love,
                                  Eleanor

                                  Mchewe Estate. 8th. August 1931

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I think it is about time I told you that we are going to have a baby. We are both
                                  thrilled about it. I have not seen a Doctor but feel very well and you are not to worry. I
                                  looked it up in my handbook for wives and reckon that the baby is due about February
                                  8th. next year.

                                  The announcement came from George, not me! I had been feeling queasy for
                                  days and was waiting for the right moment to tell George. You know. Soft lights and
                                  music etc. However when I was listlessly poking my food around one lunch time
                                  George enquired calmly, “When are you going to tell me about the baby?” Not at all
                                  according to the book! The problem is where to have the baby. February is a very wet
                                  month and the nearest Doctor is over 50 miles away at Tukuyu. I cannot go to stay at
                                  Tukuyu because there is no European accommodation at the hospital, no hotel and no
                                  friend with whom I could stay.

                                  George thinks I should go South to you but Capetown is so very far away and I
                                  love my little home here. Also George says he could not come all the way down with
                                  me as he simply must stay here and get the farm on its feet. He would drive me as far
                                  as the railway in Northern Rhodesia. It is a difficult decision to take. Write and tell me what
                                  you think.

                                  The days tick by quietly here. The servants are very willing but have to be
                                  supervised and even then a crisis can occur. Last Saturday I was feeling squeamish and
                                  decided not to have lunch. I lay reading on the couch whilst George sat down to a
                                  solitary curry lunch. Suddenly he gave an exclamation and pushed back his chair. I
                                  jumped up to see what was wrong and there, on his plate, gleaming in the curry gravy
                                  were small bits of broken glass. I hurried to the kitchen to confront Lamek with the plate.
                                  He explained that he had dropped the new and expensive bottle of curry powder on
                                  the brick floor of the kitchen. He did not tell me as he thought I would make a “shauri” so
                                  he simply scooped up the curry powder, removed the larger pieces of glass and used
                                  part of the powder for seasoning the lunch.

                                  The weather is getting warmer now. It was very cold in June and July and we had
                                  fires in the daytime as well as at night. Now that much of the land has been cleared we
                                  are able to go for pleasant walks in the weekends. My favourite spot is a waterfall on the
                                  Mchewe River just on the boundary of our land. There is a delightful little pool below the
                                  waterfall and one day George intends to stock it with trout.

                                  Now that there are more Europeans around to buy meat the natives find it worth
                                  their while to kill an occasional beast. Every now and again a native arrives with a large
                                  bowl of freshly killed beef for sale. One has no way of knowing whether the animal was
                                  healthy and the meat is often still warm and very bloody. I hated handling it at first but am
                                  becoming accustomed to it now and have even started a brine tub. There is no other
                                  way of keeping meat here and it can only be kept in its raw state for a few hours before
                                  going bad. One of the delicacies is the hump which all African cattle have. When corned
                                  it is like the best brisket.

                                  See what a housewife I am becoming.
                                  With much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. Sept.6th. 1931

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  I have grown to love the life here and am sad to think I shall be leaving
                                  Tanganyika soon for several months. Yes I am coming down to have the baby in the
                                  bosom of the family. George thinks it best and so does the doctor. I didn’t mention it
                                  before but I have never recovered fully from the effects of that bad bout of malaria and
                                  so I have been persuaded to leave George and our home and go to the Cape, in the
                                  hope that I shall come back here as fit as when I first arrived in the country plus a really
                                  healthy and bouncing baby. I am torn two ways, I long to see you all – but how I would
                                  love to stay on here.

                                  George will drive me down to Northern Rhodesia in early October to catch a
                                  South bound train. I’ll telegraph the date of departure when I know it myself. The road is
                                  very, very bad and the car has been giving a good deal of trouble so, though the baby
                                  is not due until early February, George thinks it best to get the journey over soon as
                                  possible, for the rains break in November and the the roads will then be impassable. It
                                  may take us five or six days to reach Broken Hill as we will take it slowly. I am looking
                                  forward to the drive through new country and to camping out at night.
                                  Our days pass quietly by. George is out on the shamba most of the day. He
                                  goes out before breakfast on weekdays and spends most of the day working with the
                                  men – not only supervising but actually working with his hands and beating the labourers
                                  at their own jobs. He comes to the house for meals and tea breaks. I potter around the
                                  house and garden, sew, mend and read. Lamek continues to be a treasure. he turns out
                                  some surprising dishes. One of his specialities is stuffed chicken. He carefully skins the
                                  chicken removing all bones. He then minces all the chicken meat and adds minced onion
                                  and potatoes. He then stuffs the chicken skin with the minced meat and carefully sews it
                                  together again. The resulting dish is very filling because the boned chicken is twice the
                                  size of a normal one. It lies on its back as round as a football with bloated legs in the air.
                                  Rather repulsive to look at but Lamek is most proud of his accomplishment.
                                  The other day he produced another of his masterpieces – a cooked tortoise. It
                                  was served on a dish covered with parsley and crouched there sans shell but, only too
                                  obviously, a tortoise. I took one look and fled with heaving diaphragm, but George said
                                  it tasted quite good. He tells me that he has had queerer dishes produced by former
                                  cooks. He says that once in his hunting days his cook served up a skinned baby
                                  monkey with its hands folded on its breast. He says it would take a cannibal to eat that
                                  dish.

                                  And now for something sad. Poor old Llew died quite suddenly and it was a sad
                                  shock to this tiny community. We went across to the funeral and it was a very simple and
                                  dignified affair. Llew was buried on Joni’s farm in a grave dug by the farm boys. The
                                  body was wrapped in a blanket and bound to some boards and lowered into the
                                  ground. There was no service. The men just said “Good-bye Llew.” and “Sleep well
                                  Llew”, and things like that. Then Joni and his brother-in-law Max, and George shovelled
                                  soil over the body after which the grave was filled in by Joni’s shamba boys. It was a
                                  lovely bright afternoon and I thought how simple and sensible a funeral it was.
                                  I hope you will be glad to have me home. I bet Dad will be holding thumbs that
                                  the baby will be a girl.

                                  Very much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Note
                                  “There are no letters to my family during the period of Sept. 1931 to June 1932
                                  because during these months I was living with my parents and sister in a suburb of
                                  Cape Town. I had hoped to return to Tanganyika by air with my baby soon after her
                                  birth in Feb.1932 but the doctor would not permit this.

                                  A month before my baby was born, a company called Imperial Airways, had
                                  started the first passenger service between South Africa and England. One of the night
                                  stops was at Mbeya near my husband’s coffee farm, and it was my intention to take the
                                  train to Broken Hill in Northern Rhodesia and to fly from there to Mbeya with my month
                                  old baby. In those days however, commercial flying was still a novelty and the doctor
                                  was not sure that flying at a high altitude might not have an adverse effect upon a young
                                  baby.

                                  He strongly advised me to wait until the baby was four months old and I did this
                                  though the long wait was very trying to my husband alone on our farm in Tanganyika,
                                  and to me, cherished though I was in my old home.

                                  My story, covering those nine long months is soon told. My husband drove me
                                  down from Mbeya to Broken Hill in NorthernRhodesia. The journey was tedious as the
                                  weather was very hot and dry and the road sandy and rutted, very different from the
                                  Great North road as it is today. The wooden wheel spokes of the car became so dry
                                  that they rattled and George had to bind wet rags around them. We had several
                                  punctures and with one thing and another I was lucky to catch the train.
                                  My parents were at Cape Town station to welcome me and I stayed
                                  comfortably with them, living very quietly, until my baby was born. She arrived exactly
                                  on the appointed day, Feb.8th.

                                  I wrote to my husband “Our Charmian Ann is a darling baby. She is very fair and
                                  rather pale and has the most exquisite hands, with long tapering fingers. Daddy
                                  absolutely dotes on her and so would you, if you were here. I can’t bear to think that you
                                  are so terribly far away. Although Ann was born exactly on the day, I was taken quite by
                                  surprise. It was awfully hot on the night before, and before going to bed I had a fancy for
                                  some water melon. The result was that when I woke in the early morning with labour
                                  pains and vomiting I thought it was just an attack of indigestion due to eating too much
                                  melon. The result was that I did not wake Marjorie until the pains were pretty frequent.
                                  She called our next door neighbour who, in his pyjamas, drove me to the nursing home
                                  at breakneck speed. The Matron was very peeved that I had left things so late but all
                                  went well and by nine o’clock, Mother, positively twittering with delight, was allowed to
                                  see me and her first granddaughter . She told me that poor Dad was in such a state of
                                  nerves that he was sick amongst the grapevines. He says that he could not bear to go
                                  through such an anxious time again, — so we will have to have our next eleven in
                                  Tanganyika!”

                                  The next four months passed rapidly as my time was taken up by the demands
                                  of my new baby. Dr. Trudy King’s method of rearing babies was then the vogue and I
                                  stuck fanatically to all the rules he laid down, to the intense exasperation of my parents
                                  who longed to cuddle the child.

                                  As the time of departure drew near my parents became more and more reluctant
                                  to allow me to face the journey alone with their adored grandchild, so my brother,
                                  Graham, very generously offered to escort us on the train to Broken Hill where he could
                                  put us on the plane for Mbeya.

                                  Eleanor Rushby

                                   

                                  Mchewe Estate. June 15th 1932

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You’ll be glad to know that we arrived quite safe and sound and very, very
                                  happy to be home.The train Journey was uneventful. Ann slept nearly all the way.
                                  Graham was very kind and saw to everything. He even sat with the baby whilst I went
                                  to meals in the dining car.

                                  We were met at Broken Hill by the Thoms who had arranged accommodation for
                                  us at the hotel for the night. They also drove us to the aerodrome in the morning where
                                  the Airways agent told us that Ann is the first baby to travel by air on this section of the
                                  Cape to England route. The plane trip was very bumpy indeed especially between
                                  Broken Hill and Mpika. Everyone was ill including poor little Ann who sicked up her milk
                                  all over the front of my new coat. I arrived at Mbeya looking a sorry caricature of Radiant
                                  Motherhood. I must have been pale green and the baby was snow white. Under the
                                  circumstances it was a good thing that George did not meet us. We were met instead
                                  by Ken Menzies, the owner of the Mbeya Hotel where we spent the night. Ken was
                                  most fatherly and kind and a good nights rest restored Ann and me to our usual robust
                                  health.

                                  Mbeya has greatly changed. The hotel is now finished and can accommodate
                                  fifty guests. It consists of a large main building housing a large bar and dining room and
                                  offices and a number of small cottage bedrooms. It even has electric light. There are
                                  several buildings out at the aerodrome and private houses going up in Mbeya.
                                  After breakfast Ken Menzies drove us out to the farm where we had a warm
                                  welcome from George, who looks well but rather thin. The house was spotless and the
                                  new cook, Abel, had made light scones for tea. George had prepared all sorts of lovely
                                  surprises. There is a new reed ceiling in the living room and a new dresser gay with
                                  willow pattern plates which he had ordered from England. There is also a writing table
                                  and a square table by the door for visitors hats. More personal is a lovely model ship
                                  which George assembled from one of those Hobbie’s kits. It puts the finishing touch to
                                  the rather old world air of our living room.

                                  In the bedroom there is a large double bed which George made himself. It has
                                  strips of old car tyres nailed to a frame which makes a fine springy mattress and on top
                                  of this is a thick mattress of kapok.In the kitchen there is a good wood stove which
                                  George salvaged from a Mission dump. It looks a bit battered but works very well. The
                                  new cook is excellent. The only blight is that he will wear rubber soled tennis shoes and
                                  they smell awful. I daren’t hurt his feelings by pointing this out though. Opposite the
                                  kitchen is a new laundry building containing a forty gallon hot water drum and a sink for
                                  washing up. Lovely!

                                  George has been working very hard. He now has forty acres of coffee seedlings
                                  planted out and has also found time to plant a rose garden and fruit trees. There are
                                  orange and peach trees, tree tomatoes, paw paws, guavas and berries. He absolutely
                                  adores Ann who has been very good and does not seem at all unsettled by the long
                                  journey.

                                  It is absolutely heavenly to be back and I shall be happier than ever now that I
                                  have a baby to play with during the long hours when George is busy on the farm,
                                  Thank you for all your love and care during the many months I was with you. Ann
                                  sends a special bubble for granddad.

                                  Your very loving,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate Mbeya July 18th 1932

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Ann at five months is enchanting. She is a very good baby, smiles readily and is
                                  gaining weight steadily. She doesn’t sleep much during the day but that does not
                                  matter, because, apart from washing her little things, I have nothing to do but attend to
                                  her. She sleeps very well at night which is a blessing as George has to get up very
                                  early to start work on the shamba and needs a good nights rest.
                                  My nights are not so good, because we are having a plague of rats which frisk
                                  around in the bedroom at night. Great big ones that come up out of the long grass in the
                                  gorge beside the house and make cosy homes on our reed ceiling and in the thatch of
                                  the roof.

                                  We always have a night light burning so that, if necessary, I can attend to Ann
                                  with a minimum of fuss, and the things I see in that dim light! There are gaps between
                                  the reeds and one night I heard, plop! and there, before my horrified gaze, lay a newly
                                  born hairless baby rat on the floor by the bed, plop, plop! and there lay two more.
                                  Quite dead, poor things – but what a careless mother.

                                  I have also seen rats scampering around on the tops of the mosquito nets and
                                  sometimes we have them on our bed. They have a lovely game. They swarm down
                                  the cord from which the mosquito net is suspended, leap onto the bed and onto the
                                  floor. We do not have our net down now the cold season is here and there are few
                                  mosquitoes.

                                  Last week a rat crept under Ann’s net which hung to the floor and bit her little
                                  finger, so now I tuck the net in under the mattress though it makes it difficult for me to
                                  attend to her at night. We shall have to get a cat somewhere. Ann’s pram has not yet
                                  arrived so George carries her when we go walking – to her great content.
                                  The native women around here are most interested in Ann. They come to see
                                  her, bearing small gifts, and usually bring a child or two with them. They admire my child
                                  and I admire theirs and there is an exchange of gifts. They produce a couple of eggs or
                                  a few bananas or perhaps a skinny fowl and I hand over sugar, salt or soap as they
                                  value these commodities. The most lavish gift went to the wife of Thomas our headman,
                                  who produced twin daughters in the same week as I had Ann.

                                  Our neighbours have all been across to welcome me back and to admire the
                                  baby. These include Marion Coster who came out to join her husband whilst I was in
                                  South Africa. The two Hickson-Wood children came over on a fat old white donkey.
                                  They made a pretty picture sitting astride, one behind the other – Maureen with her arms
                                  around small Michael’s waist. A native toto led the donkey and the children’ s ayah
                                  walked beside it.

                                  It is quite cold here now but the sun is bright and the air dry. The whole
                                  countryside is beautifully green and we are a very happy little family.

                                  Lots and lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate August 11th 1932

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  George has been very unwell for the past week. He had a nasty gash on his
                                  knee which went septic. He had a swelling in the groin and a high temperature and could
                                  not sleep at night for the pain in his leg. Ann was very wakeful too during the same
                                  period, I think she is teething. I luckily have kept fit though rather harassed. Yesterday the
                                  leg looked so inflamed that George decided to open up the wound himself. he made
                                  quite a big cut in exactly the right place. You should have seen the blackish puss
                                  pouring out.

                                  After he had thoroughly cleaned the wound George sewed it up himself. he has
                                  the proper surgical needles and gut. He held the cut together with his left hand and
                                  pushed the needle through the flesh with his right. I pulled the needle out and passed it
                                  to George for the next stitch. I doubt whether a surgeon could have made a neater job
                                  of it. He is still confined to the couch but today his temperature is normal. Some
                                  husband!

                                  The previous week was hectic in another way. We had a visit from lions! George
                                  and I were having supper about 8.30 on Tuesday night when the back verandah was
                                  suddenly invaded by women and children from the servants quarters behind the kitchen.
                                  They were all yelling “Simba, Simba.” – simba means lions. The door opened suddenly
                                  and the houseboy rushed in to say that there were lions at the huts. George got up
                                  swiftly, fetched gun and ammunition from the bedroom and with the houseboy carrying
                                  the lamp, went off to investigate. I remained at the table, carrying on with my supper as I
                                  felt a pioneer’s wife should! Suddenly something big leapt through the open window
                                  behind me. You can imagine what I thought! I know now that it is quite true to say one’s
                                  hair rises when one is scared. However it was only Kelly, our huge Irish wolfhound,
                                  taking cover.

                                  George returned quite soon to say that apparently the commotion made by the
                                  women and children had frightened the lions off. He found their tracks in the soft earth
                                  round the huts and a bag of maize that had been playfully torn open but the lions had
                                  moved on.

                                  Next day we heard that they had moved to Hickson-Wood’s shamba. Hicky
                                  came across to say that the lions had jumped over the wall of his cattle boma and killed
                                  both his white Muskat riding donkeys.
                                  He and a friend sat up all next night over the remains but the lions did not return to
                                  the kill.

                                  Apart from the little set back last week, Ann is blooming. She has a cap of very
                                  fine fair hair and clear blue eyes under straight brow. She also has lovely dimples in both
                                  cheeks. We are very proud of her.

                                  Our neighbours are picking coffee but the crops are small and the price is low. I
                                  am amazed that they are so optimistic about the future. No one in these parts ever
                                  seems to grouse though all are living on capital. They all say “Well if the worst happens
                                  we can always go up to the Lupa Diggings.”

                                  Don’t worry about us, we have enough to tide us over for some time yet.

                                  Much love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 28th Sept. 1932

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  News! News! I’m going to have another baby. George and I are delighted and I
                                  hope it will be a boy this time. I shall be able to have him at Mbeya because things are
                                  rapidly changing here. Several German families have moved to Mbeya including a
                                  German doctor who means to build a hospital there. I expect he will make a very good
                                  living because there must now be some hundreds of Europeans within a hundred miles
                                  radius of Mbeya. The Europeans are mostly British or German but there are also
                                  Greeks and, I believe, several other nationalities are represented on the Lupa Diggings.
                                  Ann is blooming and developing according to the Book except that she has no
                                  teeth yet! Kath Hickson-Wood has given her a very nice high chair and now she has
                                  breakfast and lunch at the table with us. Everything within reach goes on the floor to her
                                  amusement and my exasperation!

                                  You ask whether we have any Church of England missionaries in our part. No we
                                  haven’t though there are Lutheran and Roman Catholic Missions. I have never even
                                  heard of a visiting Church of England Clergyman to these parts though there are babies
                                  in plenty who have not been baptised. Jolly good thing I had Ann Christened down
                                  there.

                                  The R.C. priests in this area are called White Fathers. They all have beards and
                                  wear white cassocks and sun helmets. One, called Father Keiling, calls around frequently.
                                  Though none of us in this area is Catholic we take it in turn to put him up for the night. The
                                  Catholic Fathers in their turn are most hospitable to travellers regardless of their beliefs.
                                  Rather a sad thing has happened. Lucas our old chicken-boy is dead. I shall miss
                                  his toothy smile. George went to the funeral and fired two farewell shots from his rifle
                                  over the grave – a gesture much appreciated by the locals. Lucas in his day was a good
                                  hunter.

                                  Several of the locals own muzzle loading guns but the majority hunt with dogs
                                  and spears. The dogs wear bells which make an attractive jingle but I cannot bear the
                                  idea of small antelope being run down until they are exhausted before being clubbed of
                                  stabbed to death. We seldom eat venison as George does not care to shoot buck.
                                  Recently though, he shot an eland and Abel rendered down the fat which is excellent for
                                  cooking and very like beef fat.

                                  Much love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. P.O.Mbeya 21st November 1932

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  George has gone off to the Lupa for a week with John Molteno. John came up
                                  here with the idea of buying a coffee farm but he has changed his mind and now thinks of
                                  staking some claims on the diggings and also setting up as a gold buyer.

                                  Did I tell you about his arrival here? John and George did some elephant hunting
                                  together in French Equatorial Africa and when John heard that George had married and
                                  settled in Tanganyika, he also decided to come up here. He drove up from Cape Town
                                  in a Baby Austin and arrived just as our labourers were going home for the day. The little
                                  car stopped half way up our hill and John got out to investigate. You should have heard
                                  the astonished exclamations when John got out – all 6 ft 5 ins. of him! He towered over
                                  the little car and even to me it seemed impossible for him to have made the long
                                  journey in so tiny a car.

                                  Kath Wood has been over several times lately. She is slim and looks so right in
                                  the shirt and corduroy slacks she almost always wears. She was here yesterday when
                                  the shamba boy, digging in the front garden, unearthed a large earthenware cooking pot,
                                  sealed at the top. I was greatly excited and had an instant mental image of fabulous
                                  wealth. We made the boy bring the pot carefully on to the verandah and opened it in
                                  happy anticipation. What do you think was inside? Nothing but a grinning skull! Such a
                                  treat for a pregnant female.

                                  We have a tree growing here that had lovely straight branches covered by a
                                  smooth bark. I got the garden boy to cut several of these branches of a uniform size,
                                  peeled off the bark and have made Ann a playpen with the poles which are much like
                                  broom sticks. Now I can leave her unattended when I do my chores. The other morning
                                  after breakfast I put Ann in her playpen on the verandah and gave her a piece of toast
                                  and honey to keep her quiet whilst I laundered a few of her things. When I looked out a
                                  little later I was horrified to see a number of bees buzzing around her head whilst she
                                  placidly concentrated on her toast. I made a rapid foray and rescued her but I still don’t
                                  know whether that was the thing to do.

                                  We all send our love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mbeya Hospital. April 25th. 1933

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Here I am, installed at the very new hospital, built by Dr Eckhardt, awaiting the
                                  arrival of the new baby. George has gone back to the farm on foot but will walk in again
                                  to spend the weekend with us. Ann is with me and enjoys the novelty of playing with
                                  other children. The Eckhardts have two, a pretty little girl of two and a half and a very fair
                                  roly poly boy of Ann’s age. Ann at fourteen months is very active. She is quite a little girl
                                  now with lovely dimples. She walks well but is backward in teething.

                                  George, Ann and I had a couple of days together at the hotel before I moved in
                                  here and several of the local women visited me and have promised to visit me in
                                  hospital. The trip from farm to town was very entertaining if not very comfortable. There
                                  is ten miles of very rough road between our farm and Utengule Mission and beyond the
                                  Mission there is a fair thirteen or fourteen mile road to Mbeya.

                                  As we have no car now the doctor’s wife offered to drive us from the Mission to
                                  Mbeya but she would not risk her car on the road between the Mission and our farm.
                                  The upshot was that I rode in the Hickson-Woods machila for that ten mile stretch. The
                                  machila is a canopied hammock, slung from a bamboo pole, in which I reclined, not too
                                  comfortably in my unwieldy state, with Ann beside me or sometime straddling me. Four
                                  of our farm boys carried the machila on their shoulders, two fore and two aft. The relief
                                  bearers walked on either side. There must have been a dozen in all and they sang a sort
                                  of sea shanty song as they walked. One man would sing a verse and the others took up
                                  the chorus. They often improvise as they go. They moaned about my weight (at least
                                  George said so! I don’t follow Ki-Swahili well yet) and expressed the hope that I would
                                  have a son and that George would reward them handsomely.

                                  George and Kelly, the dog, followed close behind the machila and behind
                                  George came Abel our cook and his wife and small daughter Annalie, all in their best
                                  attire. The cook wore a palm beach suit, large Terai hat and sunglasses and two colour
                                  shoes and quite lent a tone to the proceedings! Right at the back came the rag tag and
                                  bobtail who joined the procession just for fun.

                                  Mrs Eckhardt was already awaiting us at the Mission when we arrived and we had
                                  an uneventful trip to the Mbeya Hotel.

                                  During my last week at the farm I felt very tired and engaged the cook’s small
                                  daughter, Annalie, to amuse Ann for an hour after lunch so that I could have a rest. They
                                  played in the small verandah room which adjoins our bedroom and where I keep all my
                                  sewing materials. One afternoon I was startled by a scream from Ann. I rushed to the
                                  room and found Ann with blood steaming from her cheek. Annalie knelt beside her,
                                  looking startled and frightened, with my embroidery scissors in her hand. She had cut off
                                  half of the long curling golden lashes on one of Ann’s eyelids and, in trying to finish the
                                  job, had cut off a triangular flap of skin off Ann’s cheek bone.

                                  I called Abel, the cook, and demanded that he should chastise his daughter there and
                                  then and I soon heard loud shrieks from behind the kitchen. He spanked her with a
                                  bamboo switch but I am sure not as well as she deserved. Africans are very tolerant
                                  towards their children though I have seen husbands and wives fighting furiously.
                                  I feel very well but long to have the confinement over.

                                  Very much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mbeya Hospital. 2nd May 1933.

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Little George arrived at 7.30 pm on Saturday evening 29 th. April. George was
                                  with me at the time as he had walked in from the farm for news, and what a wonderful bit
                                  of luck that was. The doctor was away on a case on the Diggings and I was bathing Ann
                                  with George looking on, when the pains started. George dried Ann and gave her
                                  supper and put her to bed. Afterwards he sat on the steps outside my room and a
                                  great comfort it was to know that he was there.

                                  The confinement was short but pretty hectic. The Doctor returned to the Hospital
                                  just in time to deliver the baby. He is a grand little boy, beautifully proportioned. The
                                  doctor says he has never seen a better formed baby. He is however rather funny
                                  looking just now as his head is, very temporarily, egg shaped. He has a shock of black
                                  silky hair like a gollywog and believe it or not, he has a slight black moustache.
                                  George came in, looked at the baby, looked at me, and we both burst out
                                  laughing. The doctor was shocked and said so. He has no sense of humour and couldn’t
                                  understand that we, though bursting with pride in our son, could never the less laugh at
                                  him.

                                  Friends in Mbeya have sent me the most gorgeous flowers and my room is
                                  transformed with delphiniums, roses and carnations. The room would be very austere
                                  without the flowers. Curtains, bedspread and enamelware, walls and ceiling are all
                                  snowy white.

                                  George hired a car and took Ann home next day. I have little George for
                                  company during the day but he is removed at night. I am longing to get him home and
                                  away from the German nurse who feeds him on black tea when he cries. She insists that
                                  tea is a medicine and good for him.

                                  Much love from a proud mother of two.
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate 12May 1933

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  We are all together at home again and how lovely it feels. Even the house
                                  servants seem pleased. The boy had decorated the lounge with sprays of
                                  bougainvillaea and Abel had backed one of his good sponge cakes.

                                  Ann looked fat and rosy but at first was only moderately interested in me and the
                                  new baby but she soon thawed. George is good with her and will continue to dress Ann
                                  in the mornings and put her to bed until I am satisfied with Georgie.

                                  He, poor mite, has a nasty rash on face and neck. I am sure it is just due to that
                                  tea the nurse used to give him at night. He has lost his moustache and is fast loosing his
                                  wild black hair and emerging as quite a handsome babe. He is a very masculine looking
                                  infant with much more strongly marked eyebrows and a larger nose that Ann had. He is
                                  very good and lies quietly in his basket even when awake.

                                  George has been making a hatching box for brown trout ova and has set it up in
                                  a small clear stream fed by a spring in readiness for the ova which is expected from
                                  South Africa by next weeks plane. Some keen fishermen from Mbeya and the District
                                  have clubbed together to buy the ova. The fingerlings are later to be transferred to
                                  streams in Mbeya and Tukuyu Districts.

                                  I shall now have my hands full with the two babies and will not have much time for the
                                  garden, or I fear, for writing very long letters. Remember though, that no matter how
                                  large my family becomes, I shall always love you as much as ever.

                                  Your affectionate,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 14th June 1933

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  The four of us are all well but alas we have lost our dear Kelly. He was rather a
                                  silly dog really, although he grew so big he retained all his puppy ways but we were all
                                  very fond of him, especially George because Kelly attached himself to George whilst I
                                  was away having Ann and from that time on he was George’s shadow. I think he had
                                  some form of biliary fever. He died stretched out on the living room couch late last night,
                                  with George sitting beside him so that he would not feel alone.

                                  The children are growing fast. Georgie is a darling. He now has a fluff of pale
                                  brown hair and his eyes are large and dark brown. Ann is very plump and fair.
                                  We have had several visitors lately. Apart from neighbours, a car load of diggers
                                  arrived one night and John Molteno and his bride were here. She is a very attractive girl
                                  but, I should say, more suited to life in civilisation than in this back of beyond. She has
                                  gone out to the diggings with her husband and will have to walk a good stretch of the fifty
                                  or so miles.

                                  The diggers had to sleep in the living room on the couch and on hastily erected
                                  camp beds. They arrived late at night and left after breakfast next day. One had half a
                                  beard, the other side of his face had been forcibly shaved in the bar the night before.

                                  your affectionate,
                                  Eleanor

                                  Mchewe Estate. August 10 th. 1933

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  George is away on safari with two Indian Army officers. The money he will get for
                                  his services will be very welcome because this coffee growing is a slow business, and
                                  our capitol is rapidly melting away. The job of acting as White Hunter was unexpected
                                  or George would not have taken on the job of hatching the ova which duly arrived from
                                  South Africa.

                                  George and the District Commissioner, David Pollock, went to meet the plane
                                  by which the ova had been consigned but the pilot knew nothing about the package. It
                                  came to light in the mail bag with the parcels! However the ova came to no harm. David
                                  Pollock and George brought the parcel to the farm and carefully transferred the ova to
                                  the hatching box. It was interesting to watch the tiny fry hatch out – a process which took
                                  several days. Many died in the process and George removed the dead by sucking
                                  them up in a glass tube.

                                  When hatched, the tiny fry were fed on ant eggs collected by the boys. I had to
                                  take over the job of feeding and removing the dead when George left on safari. The fry
                                  have to be fed every four hours, like the baby, so each time I have fed Georgie. I hurry
                                  down to feed the trout.

                                  The children are very good but keep me busy. Ann can now say several words
                                  and understands more. She adores Georgie. I long to show them off to you.

                                  Very much love
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. October 27th 1933

                                  Dear Family,

                                  All just over flu. George and Ann were very poorly. I did not fare so badly and
                                  Georgie came off best. He is on a bottle now.

                                  There was some excitement here last Wednesday morning. At 6.30 am. I called
                                  for boiling water to make Georgie’s food. No water arrived but muffled shouting and the
                                  sound of blows came from the kitchen. I went to investigate and found a fierce fight in
                                  progress between the house boy and the kitchen boy. In my efforts to make them stop
                                  fighting I went too close and got a sharp bang on the mouth with the edge of an
                                  enamelled plate the kitchen boy was using as a weapon. My teeth cut my lip inside and
                                  the plate cut it outside and blood flowed from mouth to chin. The boys were petrified.
                                  By the time I had fed Georgie the lip was stiff and swollen. George went in wrath
                                  to the kitchen and by breakfast time both house boy and kitchen boy had swollen faces
                                  too. Since then I have a kettle of boiling water to hand almost before the words are out
                                  of my mouth. I must say that the fight was because the house boy had clouted the
                                  kitchen boy for keeping me waiting! In this land of piece work it is the job of the kitchen
                                  boy to light the fire and boil the kettle but the houseboy’s job to carry the kettle to me.
                                  I have seen little of Kath Wood or Marion Coster for the past two months. Major
                                  Jones is the neighbour who calls most regularly. He has a wireless set and calls on all of
                                  us to keep us up to date with world as well as local news. He often brings oranges for
                                  Ann who adores him. He is a very nice person but no oil painting and makes no effort to
                                  entertain Ann but she thinks he is fine. Perhaps his monocle appeals to her.

                                  George has bought a six foot long galvanised bath which is a great improvement
                                  on the smaller oval one we have used until now. The smaller one had grown battered
                                  from much use and leaks like a sieve. Fortunately our bathroom has a cement floor,
                                  because one had to fill the bath to the brim and then bath extremely quickly to avoid
                                  being left high and dry.

                                  Lots and lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 1st December 1933

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Ann has not been well. We think she has had malaria. She has grown a good
                                  deal lately and looks much thinner and rather pale. Georgie is thriving and has such
                                  sparkling brown eyes and a ready smile. He and Ann make a charming pair, one so fair
                                  and the other dark.

                                  The Moltenos’ spent a few days here and took Georgie and me to Mbeya so
                                  that Georgie could be vaccinated. However it was an unsatisfactory trip because the
                                  doctor had no vaccine.

                                  George went to the Lupa with the Moltenos and returned to the farm in their Baby
                                  Austin which they have lent to us for a week. This was to enable me to go to Mbeya to
                                  have a couple of teeth filled by a visiting dentist.

                                  We went to Mbeya in the car on Saturday. It was quite a squash with the four of
                                  us on the front seat of the tiny car. Once George grabbed the babies foot instead of the
                                  gear knob! We had Georgie vaccinated at the hospital and then went to the hotel where
                                  the dentist was installed. Mr Dare, the dentist, had few instruments and they were very
                                  tarnished. I sat uncomfortably on a kitchen chair whilst he tinkered with my teeth. He filled
                                  three but two of the fillings came out that night. This meant another trip to Mbeya in the
                                  Baby Austin but this time they seem all right.

                                  The weather is very hot and dry and the garden a mess. We are having trouble
                                  with the young coffee trees too. Cut worms are killing off seedlings in the nursery and
                                  there is a borer beetle in the planted out coffee.

                                  George bought a large grey donkey from some wandering Masai and we hope
                                  the children will enjoy riding it later on.

                                  Very much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 14th February 1934.

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You will be sorry to hear that little Ann has been very ill, indeed we were terribly
                                  afraid that we were going to lose her. She enjoyed her birthday on the 8th. All the toys
                                  you, and her English granny, sent were unwrapped with such delight. However next
                                  day she seemed listless and a bit feverish so I tucked her up in bed after lunch. I dosed
                                  her with quinine and aspirin and she slept fitfully. At about eleven o’clock I was
                                  awakened by a strange little cry. I turned up the night light and was horrified to see that
                                  Ann was in a convulsion. I awakened George who, as always in an emergency, was
                                  perfectly calm and practical. He filled the small bath with very warm water and emersed
                                  Ann in it, placing a cold wet cloth on her head. We then wrapped her in blankets and
                                  gave her an enema and she settled down to sleep. A few hours later we had the same
                                  thing over again.

                                  At first light we sent a runner to Mbeya to fetch the doctor but waited all day in
                                  vain and in the evening the runner returned to say that the doctor had gone to a case on
                                  the diggings. Ann had been feverish all day with two or three convulsions. Neither
                                  George or I wished to leave the bedroom, but there was Georgie to consider, and in
                                  the afternoon I took him out in the garden for a while whilst George sat with Ann.
                                  That night we both sat up all night and again Ann had those wretched attacks of
                                  convulsions. George and I were worn out with anxiety by the time the doctor arrived the
                                  next afternoon. Ann had not been able to keep down any quinine and had had only
                                  small sips of water since the onset of the attack.

                                  The doctor at once diagnosed the trouble as malaria aggravated by teething.
                                  George held Ann whilst the Doctor gave her an injection. At the first attempt the needle
                                  bent into a bow, George was furious! The second attempt worked and after a few hours
                                  Ann’s temperature dropped and though she was ill for two days afterwards she is now
                                  up and about. She has also cut the last of her baby teeth, thank God. She looks thin and
                                  white, but should soon pick up. It has all been a great strain to both of us. Georgie
                                  behaved like an angel throughout. He played happily in his cot and did not seem to
                                  sense any tension as people say, babies do. Our baby was cheerful and not at all
                                  subdued.

                                  This is the rainy season and it is a good thing that some work has been done on
                                  our road or the doctor might not have got through.

                                  Much love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 1st October 1934

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  We are all well now, thank goodness, but last week Georgie gave us such a
                                  fright. I was sitting on the verandah, busy with some sewing and not watching Ann and
                                  Georgie, who were trying to reach a bunch of bananas which hung on a rope from a
                                  beam of the verandah. Suddenly I heard a crash, Georgie had fallen backward over the
                                  edge of the verandah and hit the back of his head on the edge of the brick furrow which
                                  carries away the rainwater. He lay flat on his back with his arms spread out and did not
                                  move or cry. When I picked him up he gave a little whimper, I carried him to his cot and
                                  bathed his face and soon he began sitting up and appeared quite normal. The trouble
                                  began after he had vomited up his lunch. He began to whimper and bang his head
                                  against the cot.

                                  George and I were very worried because we have no transport so we could not
                                  take Georgie to the doctor and we could not bear to go through again what we had gone
                                  through with Ann earlier in the year. Then, in the late afternoon, a miracle happened. Two
                                  men George hardly knew, and complete strangers to me, called in on their way from the
                                  diggings to Mbeya and they kindly drove Georgie and me to the hospital. The Doctor
                                  allowed me to stay with Georgie and we spent five days there. Luckily he responded to
                                  treatment and is now as alive as ever. Children do put years on one!

                                  There is nothing much else to report. We have a new vegetable garden which is
                                  doing well but the earth here is strange. Gardens seem to do well for two years but by
                                  that time the soil is exhausted and one must move the garden somewhere else. The
                                  coffee looks well but it will be another year before we can expect even a few bags of
                                  coffee and prices are still low. Anyway by next year George should have some good
                                  return for all his hard work.

                                  Lots of love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. November 4th 1934

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  George is home from his White Hunting safari looking very sunburnt and well.
                                  The elderly American, who was his client this time, called in here at the farm to meet me
                                  and the children. It is amazing what spirit these old lads have! This one looked as though
                                  he should be thinking in terms of slippers and an armchair but no, he thinks in terms of
                                  high powered rifles with telescopic sights.

                                  It is lovely being together again and the children are delighted to have their Dad
                                  home. Things are always exciting when George is around. The day after his return
                                  George said at breakfast, “We can’t go on like this. You and the kids never get off the
                                  shamba. We’ll simply have to get a car.” You should have heard the excitement. “Get a
                                  car Daddy?’” cried Ann jumping in her chair so that her plaits bounced. “Get a car
                                  Daddy?” echoed Georgie his brown eyes sparkling. “A car,” said I startled, “However
                                  can we afford one?”

                                  “Well,” said George, “on my way back from Safari I heard that a car is to be sold
                                  this week at the Tukuyu Court, diseased estate or bankruptcy or something, I might get it
                                  cheap and it is an A.C.” The name meant nothing to me, but George explained that an
                                  A.C. is first cousin to a Rolls Royce.

                                  So off he went to the sale and next day the children and I listened all afternoon for
                                  the sound of an approaching car. We had many false alarms but, towards evening we
                                  heard what appeared to be the roar of an aeroplane engine. It was the A.C. roaring her
                                  way up our steep hill with a long plume of steam waving gaily above her radiator.
                                  Out jumped my beaming husband and in no time at all, he was showing off her
                                  points to an admiring family. Her lines are faultless and seats though worn are most
                                  comfortable. She has a most elegant air so what does it matter that the radiator leaks like
                                  a sieve, her exhaust pipe has broken off, her tyres are worn almost to the canvas and
                                  she has no windscreen. She goes, and she cost only five pounds.

                                  Next afternoon George, the kids and I piled into the car and drove along the road
                                  on lookout for guinea fowl. All went well on the outward journey but on the homeward
                                  one the poor A.C. simply gasped and died. So I carried the shot gun and George
                                  carried both children and we trailed sadly home. This morning George went with a bunch
                                  of farmhands and brought her home. Truly temperamental, she came home literally
                                  under her own steam.

                                  George now plans to get a second hand engine and radiator for her but it won’t
                                  be an A.C. engine. I think she is the only one of her kind in the country.
                                  I am delighted to hear, dad, that you are sending a bridle for Joseph for
                                  Christmas. I am busy making a saddle out of an old piece of tent canvas stuffed with
                                  kapok, some webbing and some old rug straps. A car and a riding donkey! We’re
                                  definitely carriage folk now.

                                  Lots of love to all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 28th December 1934

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  Thank you for the wonderful Christmas parcel. My frock is a splendid fit. George
                                  declares that no one can knit socks like Mummy and the children love their toys and new
                                  clothes.

                                  Joseph, the donkey, took his bit with an air of bored resignation and Ann now
                                  rides proudly on his back. Joseph is a big strong animal with the looks and disposition of
                                  a mule. he will not go at all unless a native ‘toto’ walks before him and when he does go
                                  he wears a pained expression as though he were carrying fourteen stone instead of
                                  Ann’s fly weight. I walk beside the donkey carrying Georgie and our cat, ‘Skinny Winnie’,
                                  follows behind. Quite a cavalcade. The other day I got so exasperated with Joseph that
                                  I took Ann off and I got on. Joseph tottered a few paces and sat down! to the huge
                                  delight of our farm labourers who were going home from work. Anyway, one good thing,
                                  the donkey is so lazy that there is little chance of him bolting with Ann.

                                  The Moltenos spent Christmas with us and left for the Lupa Diggings yesterday.
                                  They arrived on the 22nd. with gifts for the children and chocolates and beer. That very
                                  afternoon George and John Molteno left for Ivuna, near Lake Ruckwa, to shoot some
                                  guinea fowl and perhaps a goose for our Christmas dinner. We expected the menfolk
                                  back on Christmas Eve and Anne and I spent a busy day making mince pies and
                                  sausage rolls. Why I don’t know, because I am sure Abel could have made them better.
                                  We decorated the Christmas tree and sat up very late but no husbands turned up.
                                  Christmas day passed but still no husbands came. Anne, like me, is expecting a baby
                                  and we both felt pretty forlorn and cross. Anne was certain that they had been caught up
                                  in a party somewhere and had forgotten all about us and I must say when Boxing Day
                                  went by and still George and John did not show up I felt ready to agree with her.
                                  They turned up towards evening and explained that on the homeward trip the car
                                  had bogged down in the mud and that they had spent a miserable Christmas. Anne
                                  refused to believe their story so George, to prove their case, got the game bag and
                                  tipped the contents on to the dining room table. Out fell several guinea fowl, long past
                                  being edible, followed by a large goose so high that it was green and blue where all the
                                  feathers had rotted off.

                                  The stench was too much for two pregnant girls. I shot out of the front door
                                  closely followed by Anne and we were both sick in the garden.

                                  I could not face food that evening but Anne is made of stronger stuff and ate her
                                  belated Christmas dinner with relish.

                                  I am looking forward enormously to having Marjorie here with us. She will be able
                                  to carry back to you an eyewitness account of our home and way of life.

                                  Much love to you all,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 5th January 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You cannot imagine how lovely it is to have Marjorie here. She came just in time
                                  because I have had pernicious vomiting and have lost a great deal of weight and she
                                  took charge of the children and made me spend three days in hospital having treatment.
                                  George took me to the hospital on the afternoon of New Years Eve and decided
                                  to spend the night at the hotel and join in the New Years Eve celebrations. I had several
                                  visitors at the hospital that evening and George actually managed to get some imported
                                  grapes for me. He returned to the farm next morning and fetched me from the hospital
                                  four days later. Of course the old A.C. just had to play up. About half way home the
                                  back axle gave in and we had to send a passing native some miles back to a place
                                  called Mbalizi to hire a lorry from a Greek trader to tow us home to the farm.
                                  The children looked well and were full of beans. I think Marjorie was thankful to
                                  hand them over to me. She is delighted with Ann’s motherly little ways but Georgie she
                                  calls “a really wild child”. He isn’t, just has such an astonishing amount of energy and is
                                  always up to mischief. Marjorie brought us all lovely presents. I am so thrilled with my
                                  sewing machine. It may be an old model but it sews marvellously. We now have an
                                  Alsatian pup as well as Joseph the donkey and the two cats.

                                  Marjorie had a midnight encounter with Joseph which gave her quite a shock but
                                  we had a good laugh about it next day. Some months ago George replaced our wattle
                                  and daub outside pit lavatory by a substantial brick one, so large that Joseph is being
                                  temporarily stabled in it at night. We neglected to warn Marj about this and one night,
                                  storm lamp in hand, she opened the door and Joseph walked out braying his thanks.
                                  I am afraid Marjorie is having a quiet time, a shame when the journey from Cape
                                  Town is so expensive. The doctor has told me to rest as much as I can, so it is
                                  impossible for us to take Marj on sight seeing trips.

                                  I hate to think that she will be leaving in ten days time.

                                  Much love,
                                  Eleanor.

                                  Mchewe Estate. 18th February 1935

                                  Dearest Family,

                                  You must be able to visualise our life here quite well now that Marj is back and
                                  has no doubt filled in all the details I forget to mention in my letters. What a journey we
                                  had in the A.C. when we took her to the plane. George, the children and I sat in front and
                                  Marj sat behind with numerous four gallon tins of water for the insatiable radiator. It was
                                  raining and the canvas hood was up but part of the side flaps are missing and as there is
                                  no glass in the windscreen the rain blew in on us. George got fed up with constantly
                                  removing the hot radiator cap so simply stuffed a bit of rag in instead. When enough
                                  steam had built up in the radiator behind the rag it blew out and we started all over again.
                                  The car still roars like an aeroplane engine and yet has little power so that George sent
                                  gangs of boys to the steep hills between the farm and the Mission to give us a push if
                                  necessary. Fortunately this time it was not, and the boys cheered us on our way. We
                                  needed their help on the homeward journey however.

                                  George has now bought an old Chev engine which he means to install before I
                                  have to go to hospital to have my new baby. It will be quite an engineering feet as
                                  George has few tools.

                                  I am sorry to say that I am still not well, something to do with kidneys or bladder.
                                  George bought me some pills from one of the several small shops which have opened
                                  in Mbeya and Ann is most interested in the result. She said seriously to Kath Wood,
                                  “Oh my Mummy is a very clever Mummy. She can do blue wee and green wee as well
                                  as yellow wee.” I simply can no longer manage the children without help and have
                                  engaged the cook’s wife, Janey, to help. The children are by no means thrilled. I plead in
                                  vain that I am not well enough to go for walks. Ann says firmly, “Ann doesn’t want to go
                                  for a walk. Ann will look after you.” Funny, though she speaks well for a three year old,
                                  she never uses the first person. Georgie say he would much rather walk with
                                  Keshokutwa, the kitchen boy. His name by the way, means day-after-tomorrow and it
                                  suits him down to the ground, Kath Wood walks over sometimes with offers of help and Ann will gladly go walking with her but Georgie won’t. He on the other hand will walk with Anne Molteno
                                  and Ann won’t. They are obstinate kids. Ann has developed a very fertile imagination.
                                  She has probably been looking at too many of those nice women’s magazines you
                                  sent. A few days ago she said, “You are sick Mummy, but Ann’s got another Mummy.
                                  She’s not sick, and my other mummy (very smugly) has lovely golden hair”. This
                                  morning’ not ten minutes after I had dressed her, she came in with her frock wet and
                                  muddy. I said in exasperation, “Oh Ann, you are naughty.” To which she instantly
                                  returned, “My other Mummy doesn’t think I am naughty. She thinks I am very nice.” It
                                  strikes me I shall have to get better soon so that I can be gay once more and compete
                                  with that phantom golden haired paragon.

                                  We had a very heavy storm over the farm last week. There was heavy rain with
                                  hail which stripped some of the coffee trees and the Mchewe River flooded and the
                                  water swept through the lower part of the shamba. After the water had receded George
                                  picked up a fine young trout which had been stranded. This was one of some he had
                                  put into the river when Georgie was a few months old.

                                  The trials of a coffee farmer are legion. We now have a plague of snails. They
                                  ring bark the young trees and leave trails of slime on the glossy leaves. All the ring
                                  barked trees will have to be cut right back and this is heartbreaking as they are bearing
                                  berries for the first time. The snails are collected by native children, piled upon the
                                  ground and bashed to a pulp which gives off a sickening stench. I am sorry for the local
                                  Africans. Locusts ate up their maize and now they are losing their bean crop to the snails.

                                  Lots of love, Eleanor

                                  #6260
                                  TracyTracy
                                  Participant

                                    From Tanganyika with Love

                                    With thanks to Mike Rushby.

                                    • “The letters of Eleanor Dunbar Leslie to her parents and her sister in South Africa
                                      concerning her life with George Gilman Rushby of Tanganyika, and the trials and
                                      joys of bringing up a family in pioneering conditions.

                                    These letters were transcribed from copies of letters typed by Eleanor Rushby from
                                    the originals which were in the estate of Marjorie Leslie, Eleanor’s sister. Eleanor
                                    kept no diary of her life in Tanganyika, so these letters were the living record of an
                                    important part of her life.

                                    Prelude
                                    Having walked across Africa from the East coast to Ubangi Shauri Chad
                                    in French Equatorial Africa, hunting elephant all the way, George Rushby
                                    made his way down the Congo to Leopoldville. He then caught a ship to
                                    Europe and had a holiday in Brussels and Paris before visiting his family
                                    in England. He developed blackwater fever and was extremely ill for a
                                    while. When he recovered he went to London to arrange his return to
                                    Africa.

                                    Whilst staying at the Overseas Club he met Eileen Graham who had come
                                    to England from Cape Town to study music. On hearing that George was
                                    sailing for Cape Town she arranged to introduce him to her friend
                                    Eleanor Dunbar Leslie. “You’ll need someone lively to show you around,”
                                    she said. “She’s as smart as paint, a keen mountaineer, a very good school
                                    teacher, and she’s attractive. You can’t miss her, because her father is a
                                    well known Cape Town Magistrate. And,” she added “I’ve already written
                                    and told her what ship you are arriving on.”

                                    Eleanor duly met the ship. She and George immediately fell in love.
                                    Within thirty six hours he had proposed marriage and was accepted
                                    despite the misgivings of her parents. As she was under contract to her
                                    High School, she remained in South Africa for several months whilst
                                    George headed for Tanganyika looking for a farm where he could build
                                    their home.

                                    These details are a summary of chapter thirteen of the Biography of
                                    George Gilman Rushby ‘The Hunter is Death “ by T.V.Bulpin.

                                     

                                    Dearest Marj,
                                    Terrifically exciting news! I’ve just become engaged to an Englishman whom I
                                    met last Monday. The result is a family upheaval which you will have no difficulty in
                                    imagining!!

                                    The Aunts think it all highly romantic and cry in delight “Now isn’t that just like our
                                    El!” Mummy says she doesn’t know what to think, that anyway I was always a harum
                                    scarum and she rather expected something like this to happen. However I know that
                                    she thinks George highly attractive. “Such a nice smile and gentle manner, and such
                                    good hands“ she murmurs appreciatively. “But WHY AN ELEPHANT HUNTER?” she
                                    ends in a wail, as though elephant hunting was an unmentionable profession.
                                    Anyway I don’t think so. Anyone can marry a bank clerk or a lawyer or even a
                                    millionaire – but whoever heard of anyone marrying anyone as exciting as an elephant
                                    hunter? I’m thrilled to bits.

                                    Daddy also takes a dim view of George’s profession, and of George himself as
                                    a husband for me. He says that I am so impulsive and have such wild enthusiasms that I
                                    need someone conservative and steady to give me some serenity and some ballast.
                                    Dad says George is a handsome fellow and a good enough chap he is sure, but
                                    he is obviously a man of the world and hints darkly at a possible PAST. George says
                                    he has nothing of the kind and anyway I’m the first girl he has asked to marry him. I don’t
                                    care anyway, I’d gladly marry him tomorrow, but Dad has other ideas.

                                    He sat in his armchair to deliver his verdict, wearing the same look he must wear
                                    on the bench. If we marry, and he doesn’t think it would be a good thing, George must
                                    buy a comfortable house for me in Central Africa where I can stay safely when he goes
                                    hunting. I interrupted to say “But I’m going too”, but dad snubbed me saying that in no
                                    time at all I’ll have a family and one can’t go dragging babies around in the African Bush.”
                                    George takes his lectures with surprising calm. He says he can see Dad’s point of
                                    view much better than I can. He told the parents today that he plans to buy a small
                                    coffee farm in the Southern Highlands of Tanganyika and will build a cosy cottage which
                                    will be a proper home for both of us, and that he will only hunt occasionally to keep the
                                    pot boiling.

                                    Mummy, of course, just had to spill the beans. She said to George, “I suppose
                                    you know that Eleanor knows very little about house keeping and can’t cook at all.” a fact
                                    that I was keeping a dark secret. But George just said, “Oh she won’t have to work. The
                                    boys do all that sort of thing. She can lie on a couch all day and read if she likes.” Well
                                    you always did say that I was a “Lily of the field,” and what a good thing! If I were one of
                                    those terribly capable women I’d probably die of frustration because it seems that
                                    African house boys feel that they have lost face if their Memsahibs do anything but the
                                    most gracious chores.

                                    George is absolutely marvellous. He is strong and gentle and awfully good
                                    looking too. He is about 5 ft 10 ins tall and very broad. He wears his curly brown hair cut
                                    very short and has a close clipped moustache. He has strongly marked eyebrows and
                                    very striking blue eyes which sometimes turn grey or green. His teeth are strong and
                                    even and he has a quiet voice.

                                    I expect all this sounds too good to be true, but come home quickly and see for
                                    yourself. George is off to East Africa in three weeks time to buy our farm. I shall follow as
                                    soon as he has bought it and we will be married in Dar es Salaam.

                                    Dad has taken George for a walk “to get to know him” and that’s why I have time
                                    to write such a long screed. They should be back any minute now and I must fly and
                                    apply a bit of glamour.

                                    Much love my dear,
                                    your jubilant
                                    Eleanor

                                    S.S.Timavo. Durban. 28th.October. 1930.

                                    Dearest Family,
                                    Thank you for the lovely send off. I do wish you were all on board with me and
                                    could come and dance with me at my wedding. We are having a very comfortable
                                    voyage. There were only four of the passengers as far as Durban, all of them women,
                                    but I believe we are taking on more here. I have a most comfortable deck cabin to
                                    myself and the use of a sumptuous bathroom. No one is interested in deck games and I
                                    am having a lazy time, just sunbathing and reading.

                                    I sit at the Captain’s table and the meals are delicious – beautifully served. The
                                    butter for instance, is moulded into sprays of roses, most exquisitely done, and as for
                                    the ice-cream, I’ve never tasted anything like them.

                                    The meals are continental type and we have hors d’oeuvre in a great variety
                                    served on large round trays. The Italians souse theirs with oil, Ugh! We also of course
                                    get lots of spaghetti which I have some difficulty in eating. However this presents no
                                    problem to the Chief Engineer who sits opposite to me. He simply rolls it around his
                                    fork and somehow the spaghetti flows effortlessly from fork to mouth exactly like an
                                    ascending escalator. Wine is served at lunch and dinner – very mild and pleasant stuff.
                                    Of the women passengers the one i liked best was a young German widow
                                    from South west Africa who left the ship at East London to marry a man she had never
                                    met. She told me he owned a drapers shop and she was very happy at the prospect
                                    of starting a new life, as her previous marriage had ended tragically with the death of her
                                    husband and only child in an accident.

                                    I was most interested to see the bridegroom and stood at the rail beside the gay
                                    young widow when we docked at East London. I picked him out, without any difficulty,
                                    from the small group on the quay. He was a tall thin man in a smart grey suit and with a
                                    grey hat perched primly on his head. You can always tell from hats can’t you? I wasn’t
                                    surprised to see, when this German raised his head, that he looked just like the Kaiser’s
                                    “Little Willie”. Long thin nose and cold grey eyes and no smile of welcome on his tight
                                    mouth for the cheery little body beside me. I quite expected him to jerk his thumb and
                                    stalk off, expecting her to trot at his heel.

                                    However she went off blithely enough. Next day before the ship sailed, she
                                    was back and I saw her talking to the Captain. She began to cry and soon after the
                                    Captain patted her on the shoulder and escorted her to the gangway. Later the Captain
                                    told me that the girl had come to ask him to allow her to work her passage back to
                                    Germany where she had some relations. She had married the man the day before but
                                    she disliked him because he had deceived her by pretending that he owned a shop
                                    whereas he was only a window dresser. Bad show for both.

                                    The Captain and the Chief Engineer are the only officers who mix socially with
                                    the passengers. The captain seems rather a melancholy type with, I should say, no
                                    sense of humour. He speaks fair English with an American accent. He tells me that he
                                    was on the San Francisco run during Prohibition years in America and saw many Film
                                    Stars chiefly “under the influence” as they used to flock on board to drink. The Chief
                                    Engineer is big and fat and cheerful. His English is anything but fluent but he makes up
                                    for it in mime.

                                    I visited the relations and friends at Port Elizabeth and East London, and here at
                                    Durban. I stayed with the Trotters and Swans and enjoyed myself very much at both
                                    places. I have collected numerous wedding presents, china and cutlery, coffee
                                    percolator and ornaments, and where I shall pack all these things I don’t know. Everyone has been terribly kind and I feel extremely well and happy.

                                    At the start of the voyage I had a bit of bad luck. You will remember that a
                                    perfectly foul South Easter was blowing. Some men were busy working on a deck
                                    engine and I stopped to watch and a tiny fragment of steel blew into my eye. There is
                                    no doctor on board so the stewardess put some oil into the eye and bandaged it up.
                                    The eye grew more and more painful and inflamed and when when we reached Port
                                    Elizabeth the Captain asked the Port Doctor to look at it. The Doctor said it was a job for
                                    an eye specialist and telephoned from the ship to make an appointment. Luckily for me,
                                    Vincent Tofts turned up at the ship just then and took me off to the specialist and waited
                                    whilst he extracted the fragment with a giant magnet. The specialist said that I was very
                                    lucky as the thing just missed the pupil of my eye so my sight will not be affected. I was
                                    temporarily blinded by the Belladona the eye-man put in my eye so he fitted me with a
                                    pair of black goggles and Vincent escorted me back to the ship. Don’t worry the eye is
                                    now as good as ever and George will not have to take a one-eyed bride for better or
                                    worse.

                                    I have one worry and that is that the ship is going to be very much overdue by
                                    the time we reach Dar es Salaam. She is taking on a big wool cargo and we were held
                                    up for three days in East london and have been here in Durban for five days.
                                    Today is the ninth Anniversary of the Fascist Movement and the ship was
                                    dressed with bunting and flags. I must now go and dress for the gala dinner.

                                    Bless you all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    S.S.Timavo. 6th. November 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Nearly there now. We called in at Lourenco Marques, Beira, Mozambique and
                                    Port Amelia. I was the only one of the original passengers left after Durban but there we
                                    took on a Mrs Croxford and her mother and two men passengers. Mrs C must have
                                    something, certainly not looks. She has a flat figure, heavily mascared eyes and crooked
                                    mouth thickly coated with lipstick. But her rather sweet old mother-black-pearls-type tells
                                    me they are worn out travelling around the world trying to shake off an admirer who
                                    pursues Mrs C everywhere.

                                    The one male passenger is very quiet and pleasant. The old lady tells me that he
                                    has recently lost his wife. The other passenger is a horribly bumptious type.
                                    I had my hair beautifully shingled at Lourenco Marques, but what an experience it
                                    was. Before we docked I asked the Captain whether he knew of a hairdresser, but he
                                    said he did not and would have to ask the agent when he came aboard. The agent was
                                    a very suave Asian. He said “Sure he did” and offered to take me in his car. I rather
                                    doubtfully agreed — such a swarthy gentleman — and was driven, not to a hairdressing
                                    establishment, but to his office. Then he spoke to someone on the telephone and in no
                                    time at all a most dago-y type arrived carrying a little black bag. He was all patent
                                    leather, hair, and flashing smile, and greeted me like an old and valued friend.
                                    Before I had collected my scattered wits tthe Agent had flung open a door and
                                    ushered me through, and I found myself seated before an ornate mirror in what was only
                                    too obviously a bedroom. It was a bedroom with a difference though. The unmade bed
                                    had no legs but hung from the ceiling on brass chains.

                                    The agent beamingly shut the door behind him and I was left with my imagination
                                    and the afore mentioned oily hairdresser. He however was very business like. Before I
                                    could say knife he had shingled my hair with a cut throat razor and then, before I could
                                    protest, had smothered my neck in stinking pink powder applied with an enormous and
                                    filthy swansdown powder puff. He held up a mirror for me to admire his handiwork but I
                                    was aware only of the enormous bed reflected in it, and hurriedly murmuring “very nice,
                                    very nice” I made my escape to the outer office where, to my relief, I found the Chief
                                    Engineer who escorted me back to the ship.

                                    In the afternoon Mrs Coxford and the old lady and I hired a taxi and went to the
                                    Polana Hotel for tea. Very swish but I like our Cape Peninsula beaches better.
                                    At Lorenco Marques we took on more passengers. The Governor of
                                    Portuguese Nyasaland and his wife and baby son. He was a large middle aged man,
                                    very friendly and unassuming and spoke perfect English. His wife was German and
                                    exquisite, as fragile looking and with the delicate colouring of a Dresden figurine. She
                                    looked about 18 but she told me she was 28 and showed me photographs of two
                                    other sons – hefty youngsters, whom she had left behind in Portugal and was missing
                                    very much.

                                    It was frightfully hot at Beira and as I had no money left I did not go up to the
                                    town, but Mrs Croxford and I spent a pleasant hour on the beach under the Casurina
                                    trees.

                                    The Governor and his wife left the ship at Mozambique. He looked very
                                    imposing in his starched uniform and she more Dresden Sheperdish than ever in a
                                    flowered frock. There was a guard of honour and all the trimmings. They bade me a warm farewell and invited George and me to stay at any time.

                                    The German ship “Watussi” was anchored in the Bay and I decided to visit her
                                    and try and have my hair washed and set. I had no sooner stepped on board when a
                                    lady came up to me and said “Surely you are Beeba Leslie.” It was Mrs Egan and she
                                    had Molly with her. Considering Mrs Egan had not seen me since I was five I think it was
                                    jolly clever of her to recognise me. Molly is charming and was most friendly. She fixed
                                    things with the hairdresser and sat with me until the job was done. Afterwards I had tea
                                    with them.

                                    Port Amelia was our last stop. In fact the only person to go ashore was Mr
                                    Taylor, the unpleasant man, and he returned at sunset very drunk indeed.
                                    We reached Port Amelia on the 3rd – my birthday. The boat had anchored by
                                    the time I was dressed and when I went on deck I saw several row boats cluttered
                                    around the gangway and in them were natives with cages of wild birds for sale. Such tiny
                                    crowded cages. I was furious, you know me. I bought three cages, carried them out on
                                    to the open deck and released the birds. I expected them to fly to the land but they flew
                                    straight up into the rigging.

                                    The quiet male passenger wandered up and asked me what I was doing. I said
                                    “I’m giving myself a birthday treat, I hate to see caged birds.” So next thing there he
                                    was buying birds which he presented to me with “Happy Birthday.” I gladly set those
                                    birds free too and they joined the others in the rigging.

                                    Then a grinning steward came up with three more cages. “For the lady with
                                    compliments of the Captain.” They lost no time in joining their friends.
                                    It had given me so much pleasure to free the birds that I was only a little
                                    discouraged when the quiet man said thoughtfully “This should encourage those bird
                                    catchers you know, they are sold out. When evening came and we were due to sail I
                                    was sure those birds would fly home, but no, they are still there and they will probably
                                    remain until we dock at Dar es Salaam.

                                    During the morning the Captain came up and asked me what my Christian name
                                    is. He looked as grave as ever and I couldn’t think why it should interest him but said “the
                                    name is Eleanor.” That night at dinner there was a large iced cake in the centre of the
                                    table with “HELENA” in a delicate wreath of pink icing roses on the top. We had
                                    champagne and everyone congratulated me and wished me good luck in my marriage.
                                    A very nice gesture don’t you think. The unpleasant character had not put in an
                                    appearance at dinner which made the party all the nicer

                                    I sat up rather late in the lounge reading a book and by the time I went to bed
                                    there was not a soul around. I bathed and changed into my nighty,walked into my cabin,
                                    shed my dressing gown, and pottered around. When I was ready for bed I put out my
                                    hand to draw the curtains back and a hand grasped my wrist. It was that wretched
                                    creature outside my window on the deck, still very drunk. Luckily I was wearing that
                                    heavy lilac silk nighty. I was livid. “Let go at once”, I said, but he only grinned stupidly.
                                    “I’m not hurting you” he said, “only looking”. “I’ll ring for the steward” said I, and by
                                    stretching I managed to press the bell with my free hand. I rang and rang but no one
                                    came and he just giggled. Then I said furiously, “Remember this name, George
                                    Rushby, he is a fine boxer and he hates specimens like you. When he meets me at Dar
                                    es Salaam I shall tell him about this and I bet you will be sorry.” However he still held on
                                    so I turned and knocked hard on the adjoining wall which divided my cabin from Mrs
                                    Croxfords. Soon Mrs Croxford and the old lady appeared in dressing gowns . This
                                    seemed to amuse the drunk even more though he let go my wrist. So whilst the old
                                    lady stayed with me, Mrs C fetched the quiet passenger who soon hustled him off. He has kept out of my way ever since. However I still mean to tell George because I feel
                                    the fellow got off far too lightly. I reported the matter to the Captain but he just remarked
                                    that he always knew the man was low class because he never wears a jacket to meals.
                                    This is my last night on board and we again had free champagne and I was given
                                    some tooled leather work by the Captain and a pair of good paste earrings by the old
                                    lady. I have invited them and Mrs Croxford, the Chief Engineer, and the quiet
                                    passenger to the wedding.

                                    This may be my last night as Eleanor Leslie and I have spent this long while
                                    writing to you just as a little token of my affection and gratitude for all the years of your
                                    love and care. I shall post this letter on the ship and must turn now and get some beauty
                                    sleep. We have been told that we shall be in Dar es Salaam by 9 am. I am so excited
                                    that I shall not sleep.

                                    Very much love, and just for fun I’ll sign my full name for the last time.
                                    with my “bes respeks”,

                                    Eleanor Leslie.

                                    Eleanor and George Rushby:

                                    Eleanor and George Rushby

                                    Splendid Hotel, Dar es Salaam 11th November 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    I’m writing this in the bedroom whilst George is out buying a tin trunk in which to
                                    pack all our wedding presents. I expect he will be gone a long time because he has
                                    gone out with Hicky Wood and, though our wedding was four days ago, it’s still an
                                    excuse for a party. People are all very cheery and friendly here.
                                    I am wearing only pants and slip but am still hot. One swelters here in the
                                    mornings, but a fresh sea breeze blows in the late afternoons and then Dar es Salaam is
                                    heavenly.

                                    We arrived in Dar es Salaam harbour very early on Friday morning (7 th Nov).
                                    The previous night the Captain had said we might not reach Dar. until 9 am, and certainly
                                    no one would be allowed on board before 8 am. So I dawdled on the deck in my
                                    dressing gown and watched the green coastline and the islands slipping by. I stood on
                                    the deck outside my cabin and was not aware that I was looking out at the wrong side of
                                    the landlocked harbour. Quite unknown to me George and some friends, the Hickson
                                    Woods, were standing on the Gymkhana Beach on the opposite side of the channel
                                    anxiously scanning the ship for a sign of me. George says he had a horrible idea I had
                                    missed the ship. Blissfully unconscious of his anxiety I wandered into the bathroom
                                    prepared for a good soak. The anchor went down when I was in the bath and suddenly
                                    there was a sharp wrap on the door and I heard Mrs Croxford say “There’s a man in a
                                    boat outside. He is looking out for someone and I’m sure it’s your George. I flung on
                                    some clothes and rushed on deck with tousled hair and bare feet and it was George.
                                    We had a marvellous reunion. George was wearing shorts and bush shirt and
                                    looked just like the strong silent types one reads about in novels. I finished dressing then
                                    George helped me bundle all the wedding presents I had collected en route into my
                                    travelling rug and we went into the bar lounge to join the Hickson Woods. They are the
                                    couple from whom George bought the land which is to be our coffee farm Hicky-Wood
                                    was laughing when we joined them. he said he had called a chap to bring a couple of
                                    beers thinking he was the steward but it turned out to be the Captain. He does wear
                                    such a very plain uniform that I suppose it was easy to make the mistake, but Hicky
                                    says he was not amused.

                                    Anyway as the H-W’s are to be our neighbours I’d better describe them. Kath
                                    Wood is very attractive, dark Irish, with curly black hair and big brown eyes. She was
                                    married before to Viv Lumb a great friend of George’s who died some years ago of
                                    blackwater fever. They had one little girl, Maureen, and Kath and Hicky have a small son
                                    of three called Michael. Hicky is slightly below average height and very neat and dapper
                                    though well built. He is a great one for a party and good fun but George says he can be
                                    bad tempered.

                                    Anyway we all filed off the ship and Hicky and Cath went on to the hotel whilst
                                    George and I went through customs. Passing the customs was easy. Everyone
                                    seemed to know George and that it was his wedding day and I just sailed through,
                                    except for the little matter of the rug coming undone when George and I had to scramble
                                    on the floor for candlesticks and fruit knives and a wooden nut bowl.
                                    Outside the customs shed we were mobbed by a crowd of jabbering Africans
                                    offering their services as porters, and soon my luggage was piled in one rickshaw whilst
                                    George and I climbed into another and we were born smoothly away on rubber shod
                                    wheels to the Splendid Hotel. The motion was pleasing enough but it seemed weird to
                                    be pulled along by one human being whilst another pushed behind.  We turned up a street called Acacia Avenue which, as its name implies, is lined
                                    with flamboyant acacia trees now in the full glory of scarlet and gold. The rickshaw
                                    stopped before the Splendid Hotel and I was taken upstairs into a pleasant room which
                                    had its own private balcony overlooking the busy street.

                                    Here George broke the news that we were to be married in less than an hours
                                    time. He would have to dash off and change and then go straight to the church. I would
                                    be quite all right, Kath would be looking in and friends would fetch me.
                                    I started to dress and soon there was a tap at the door and Mrs Hickson-Wood
                                    came in with my bouquet. It was a lovely bunch of carnations and frangipani with lots of
                                    asparagus fern and it went well with my primrose yellow frock. She admired my frock
                                    and Leghorn hat and told me that her little girl Maureen was to be my flower girl. Then
                                    she too left for the church.

                                    I was fully dressed when there was another knock on the door and I opened it to
                                    be confronted by a Police Officer in a starched white uniform. I’m McCallum”, he said,
                                    “I’ve come to drive you to the church.” Downstairs he introduced me to a big man in a
                                    tussore silk suit. “This is Dr Shicore”, said McCallum, “He is going to give you away.”
                                    Honestly, I felt exactly like Alice in Wonderland. Wouldn’t have been at all surprised if
                                    the White Rabbit had popped up and said he was going to be my page.

                                    I walked out of the hotel and across the pavement in a dream and there, by the
                                    curb, was a big dark blue police car decorated with white ribbons and with a tall African
                                    Police Ascari holding the door open for me. I had hardly time to wonder what next when
                                    the car drew up before a tall German looking church. It was in fact the Lutheran Church in
                                    the days when Tanganyika was German East Africa.

                                    Mrs Hickson-Wood, very smart in mushroom coloured georgette and lace, and
                                    her small daughter were waiting in the porch, so in we went. I was glad to notice my
                                    friends from the boat sitting behind George’s friends who were all complete strangers to
                                    me. The aisle seemed very long but at last I reached George waiting in the chancel with
                                    Hicky-Wood, looking unfamiliar in a smart tussore suit. However this feeling of unreality
                                    passed when he turned his head and smiled at me.

                                    In the vestry after the ceremony I was kissed affectionately by several complete
                                    strangers and I felt happy and accepted by George’s friends. Outside the church,
                                    standing apart from the rest of the guests, the Italian Captain and Chief Engineer were
                                    waiting. They came up and kissed my hand, and murmured felicitations, but regretted
                                    they could not spare the time to come to the reception. Really it was just as well
                                    because they would not have fitted in at all well.

                                    Dr Shircore is the Director of Medical Services and he had very kindly lent his
                                    large house for the reception. It was quite a party. The guests were mainly men with a
                                    small sprinkling of wives. Champagne corks popped and there was an enormous cake
                                    and soon voices were raised in song. The chief one was ‘Happy Days Are Here Again’
                                    and I shall remember it for ever.

                                    The party was still in full swing when George and I left. The old lady from the ship
                                    enjoyed it hugely. She came in an all black outfit with a corsage of artificial Lily-of-the-
                                    Valley. Later I saw one of the men wearing the corsage in his buttonhole and the old
                                    lady was wearing a carnation.

                                    When George and I got back to the hotel,I found that my luggage had been
                                    moved to George’s room by his cook Lamek, who was squatting on his haunches and
                                    clapped his hands in greeting. My dears, you should see Lamek – exactly like a
                                    chimpanzee – receding forehead, wide flat nose, and long lip, and such splayed feet. It was quite a strain not to laugh, especially when he produced a gift for me. I have not yet
                                    discovered where he acquired it. It was a faded mauve straw toque of the kind worn by
                                    Queen Mary. I asked George to tell Lamek that I was touched by his generosity but felt
                                    that I could not accept his gift. He did not mind at all especially as George gave him a
                                    generous tip there and then.

                                    I changed into a cotton frock and shady straw hat and George changed into shorts
                                    and bush shirt once more. We then sneaked into the dining room for lunch avoiding our
                                    wedding guests who were carrying on the party in the lounge.

                                    After lunch we rejoined them and they all came down to the jetty to wave goodbye
                                    as we set out by motor launch for Honeymoon Island. I enjoyed the launch trip very
                                    much. The sea was calm and very blue and the palm fringed beaches of Dar es Salaam
                                    are as romantic as any bride could wish. There are small coral islands dotted around the
                                    Bay of which Honeymoon Island is the loveliest. I believe at one time it bore the less
                                    romantic name of Quarantine Island. Near the Island, in the shallows, the sea is brilliant
                                    green and I saw two pink jellyfish drifting by.

                                    There is no jetty on the island so the boat was stopped in shallow water and
                                    George carried me ashore. I was enchanted with the Island and in no hurry to go to the
                                    bungalow, so George and I took our bathing costumes from our suitcases and sent the
                                    luggage up to the house together with a box of provisions.

                                    We bathed and lazed on the beach and suddenly it was sunset and it began to
                                    get dark. We walked up the beach to the bungalow and began to unpack the stores,
                                    tea, sugar, condensed milk, bread and butter, sardines and a large tin of ham. There
                                    were also cups and saucers and plates and cutlery.

                                    We decided to have an early meal and George called out to the caretaker, “Boy
                                    letta chai”. Thereupon the ‘boy’ materialised and jabbered to George in Ki-Swaheli. It
                                    appeared he had no utensil in which to boil water. George, ever resourceful, removed
                                    the ham from the tin and gave him that. We had our tea all right but next day the ham
                                    was bad.

                                    Then came bed time. I took a hurricane lamp in one hand and my suitcase in the
                                    other and wandered into the bedroom whilst George vanished into the bathroom. To
                                    my astonishment I saw two perfectly bare iron bedsteads – no mattress or pillows. We
                                    had brought sheets and mosquito nets but, believe me, they are a poor substitute for a
                                    mattress.

                                    Anyway I arrayed myself in my pale yellow satin nightie and sat gingerly down
                                    on the iron edge of the bed to await my groom who eventually appeared in a
                                    handsome suit of silk pyjamas. His expression, as he took in the situation, was too much
                                    for me and I burst out laughing and so did he.

                                    Somewhere in the small hours I woke up. The breeze had dropped and the
                                    room was unbearably stuffy. I felt as dry as a bone. The lamp had been turned very
                                    low and had gone out, but I remembered seeing a water tank in the yard and I decided
                                    to go out in the dark and drink from the tap. In the dark I could not find my slippers so I
                                    slipped my feet into George’s shoes, picked up his matches and groped my way out
                                    of the room. I found the tank all right and with one hand on the tap and one cupped for
                                    water I stooped to drink. Just then I heard a scratchy noise and sensed movements
                                    around my feet. I struck a match and oh horrors! found that the damp spot on which I was
                                    standing was alive with white crabs. In my hurry to escape I took a clumsy step, put
                                    George’s big toe on the hem of my nightie and down I went on top of the crabs. I need
                                    hardly say that George was awakened by an appalling shriek and came rushing to my
                                    aid like a knight of old.  Anyway, alarms and excursions not withstanding, we had a wonderful weekend on the island and I was sorry to return to the heat of Dar es Salaam, though the evenings
                                    here are lovely and it is heavenly driving along the coast road by car or in a rickshaw.
                                    I was surprised to find so many Indians here. Most of the shops, large and small,
                                    seem to be owned by Indians and the place teems with them. The women wear
                                    colourful saris and their hair in long black plaits reaching to their waists. Many wear baggy
                                    trousers of silk or satin. They give a carnival air to the sea front towards sunset.
                                    This long letter has been written in instalments throughout the day. My first break
                                    was when I heard the sound of a band and rushed to the balcony in time to see The
                                    Kings African Rifles band and Askaris march down the Avenue on their way to an
                                    Armistice Memorial Service. They looked magnificent.

                                    I must end on a note of most primitive pride. George returned from his shopping
                                    expedition and beamingly informed me that he had thrashed the man who annoyed me
                                    on the ship. I felt extremely delighted and pressed for details. George told me that
                                    when he went out shopping he noticed to his surprise that the ‘Timavo” was still in the
                                    harbour. He went across to the Agents office and there saw a man who answered to the
                                    description I had given. George said to him “Is your name Taylor?”, and when he said
                                    “yes”, George said “Well my name is George Rushby”, whereupon he hit Taylor on the
                                    jaw so that he sailed over the counter and down the other side. Very satisfactory, I feel.
                                    With much love to all.

                                    Your cave woman
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. P.O. Mbeya 22 November 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Well here we are at our Country Seat, Mchewe Estate. (pronounced
                                    Mn,-che’-we) but I will start at the beginning of our journey and describe the farm later.
                                    We left the hotel at Dar es Salaam for the station in a taxi crowded with baggage
                                    and at the last moment Keith Wood ran out with the unwrapped bottom layer of our
                                    wedding cake. It remained in its naked state from there to here travelling for two days in
                                    the train on the luggage rack, four days in the car on my knee, reposing at night on the
                                    roof of the car exposed to the winds of Heaven, and now rests beside me in the tent
                                    looking like an old old tombstone. We have no tin large enough to hold it and one
                                    simply can’t throw away ones wedding cake so, as George does not eat cake, I can see
                                    myself eating wedding cake for tea for months to come, ants permitting.

                                    We travelled up by train from Dar to Dodoma, first through the lush vegetation of
                                    the coastal belt to Morogoro, then through sisal plantations now very overgrown with
                                    weeds owing to the slump in prices, and then on to the arid area around Dodoma. This
                                    part of the country is very dry at this time of the year and not unlike parts of our Karoo.
                                    The train journey was comfortable enough but slow as the engines here are fed with
                                    wood and not coal as in South Africa.

                                    Dodoma is the nearest point on the railway to Mbeya so we left the train there to
                                    continue our journey by road. We arrived at the one and only hotel in the early hours and
                                    whilst someone went to rout out the night watchman the rest of us sat on the dismal
                                    verandah amongst a litter of broken glass. Some bright spark remarked on the obvious –
                                    that there had been a party the night before.

                                    When we were shown to a room I thought I rather preferred the verandah,
                                    because the beds had not yet been made up and there was a bucket of vomit beside
                                    the old fashioned washstand. However George soon got the boys to clean up the
                                    room and I fell asleep to be awakened by George with an invitation to come and see
                                    our car before breakfast.

                                    Yes, we have our own car. It is a Chev, with what is called a box body. That
                                    means that sides, roof and doors are made by a local Indian carpenter. There is just the
                                    one front seat with a kapok mattress on it. The tools are kept in a sort of cupboard fixed
                                    to the side so there is a big space for carrying “safari kit” behind the cab seat.
                                    Lamek, who had travelled up on the same train, appeared after breakfast, and
                                    helped George to pack all our luggage into the back of the car. Besides our suitcases
                                    there was a huge bedroll, kitchen utensils and a box of provisions, tins of petrol and
                                    water and all Lamek’s bits and pieces which included three chickens in a wicker cage and
                                    an enormous bunch of bananas about 3 ft long.

                                    When all theses things were packed there remained only a small space between
                                    goods and ceiling and into this Lamek squeezed. He lay on his back with his horny feet a
                                    mere inch or so from the back of my head. In this way we travelled 400 miles over
                                    bumpy earth roads and crude pole bridges, but whenever we stopped for a meal
                                    Lamek wriggled out and, like Aladdin’s genie, produced good meals in no time at all.
                                    In the afternoon we reached a large river called the Ruaha. Workmen were busy
                                    building a large bridge across it but it is not yet ready so we crossed by a ford below
                                    the bridge. George told me that the river was full of crocodiles but though I looked hard, I
                                    did not see any. This is also elephant country but I did not see any of those either, only
                                    piles of droppings on the road. I must tell you that the natives around these parts are called Wahehe and the river is Ruaha – enough to make a cat laugh. We saw some Wahehe out hunting with spears
                                    and bows and arrows. They live in long low houses with the tiniest shuttered windows
                                    and rounded roofs covered with earth.

                                    Near the river we also saw a few Masai herding cattle. They are rather terrifying to
                                    look at – tall, angular, and very aloof. They wear nothing but a blanket knotted on one
                                    shoulder, concealing nothing, and all carried one or two spears.
                                    The road climbs steeply on the far side of the Ruaha and one has the most
                                    tremendous views over the plains. We spent our first night up there in the high country.
                                    Everything was taken out of the car, the bed roll opened up and George and I slept
                                    comfortably in the back of the car whilst Lamek, rolled in a blanket, slept soundly by a
                                    small fire nearby. Next morning we reached our first township, Iringa, and put up at the
                                    Colonist Hotel. We had a comfortable room in the annex overlooking the golf course.
                                    our room had its own little dressing room which was also the bathroom because, when
                                    ordered to do so, the room boy carried in an oval galvanised bath and filled it with hot
                                    water which he carried in a four gallon petrol tin.

                                    When we crossed to the main building for lunch, George was immediately hailed
                                    by several men who wanted to meet the bride. I was paid some handsome
                                    compliments but was not sure whether they were sincere or the result of a nice alcoholic
                                    glow. Anyhow every one was very friendly.

                                    After lunch I went back to the bedroom leaving George chatting away. I waited and
                                    waited – no George. I got awfully tired of waiting and thought I’d give him a fright so I
                                    walked out onto the deserted golf course and hid behind some large boulders. Soon I
                                    saw George returning to the room and the boy followed with a tea tray. Ah, now the hue
                                    and cry will start, thought I, but no, no George appeared nor could I hear any despairing
                                    cry. When sunset came I trailed crossly back to our hotel room where George lay
                                    innocently asleep on his bed, hands folded on his chest like a crusader on his tomb. In a
                                    moment he opened his eyes, smiled sleepily and said kindly, “Did you have a nice walk
                                    my love?” So of course I couldn’t play the neglected wife as he obviously didn’t think
                                    me one and we had a very pleasant dinner and party in the hotel that evening.
                                    Next day we continued our journey but turned aside to visit the farm of a sprightly
                                    old man named St.Leger Seaton whom George had known for many years, so it was
                                    after dark before George decided that we had covered our quota of miles for the day.
                                    Whilst he and Lamek unpacked I wandered off to a stream to cool my hot feet which had
                                    baked all day on the floor boards of the car. In the rather dim moonlight I sat down on the
                                    grassy bank and gratefully dabbled my feet in the cold water. A few minutes later I
                                    started up with a shriek – I had the sensation of red hot pins being dug into all my most
                                    sensitive parts. I started clawing my clothes off and, by the time George came to the
                                    rescue with the lamp, I was practically in the nude. “Only Siafu ants,” said George calmly.
                                    Take off all your clothes and get right in the water.” So I had a bathe whilst George
                                    picked the ants off my clothes by the light of the lamp turned very low for modesty’s
                                    sake. Siafu ants are beastly things. They are black ants with outsized heads and
                                    pinchers. I shall be very, very careful where I sit in future.

                                    The next day was even hotter. There was no great variety in the scenery. Most
                                    of the country was covered by a tree called Miombo, which is very ordinary when the
                                    foliage is a mature deep green, but when in new leaf the trees look absolutely beautiful
                                    as the leaves,surprisingly, are soft pastel shades of red and yellow.

                                    Once again we turned aside from the main road to visit one of George’s friends.
                                    This man Major Hugh Jones MC, has a farm only a few miles from ours but just now he is supervising the making of an airstrip. Major Jones is quite a character. He is below
                                    average height and skinny with an almost bald head and one nearly blind eye into which
                                    he screws a monocle. He is a cultured person and will, I am sure, make an interesting
                                    neighbour. George and Major Jones’ friends call him ‘Joni’ but he is generally known in
                                    this country as ‘Ropesoles’ – as he is partial to that type of footwear.
                                    We passed through Mbeya township after dark so I have no idea what the place
                                    is like. The last 100 miles of our journey was very dusty and the last 15 miles extremely
                                    bumpy. The road is used so little that in some places we had to plow our way through
                                    long grass and I was delighted when at last George turned into a side road and said
                                    “This is our place.” We drove along the bank of the Mchewe River, then up a hill and
                                    stopped at a tent which was pitched beside the half built walls of our new home. We
                                    were expected so there was hot water for baths and after a supper of tinned food and
                                    good hot tea, I climbed thankfully into bed.

                                    Next morning I was awakened by the chattering of the African workmen and was
                                    soon out to inspect the new surroundings. Our farm was once part of Hickson Wood’s
                                    land and is separated from theirs by a river. Our houses cannot be more than a few
                                    hundred yards apart as the crow flies but as both are built on the slopes of a long range
                                    of high hills, and one can only cross the river at the foot of the slopes, it will be quite a
                                    safari to go visiting on foot . Most of our land is covered with shoulder high grass but it
                                    has been partly cleared of trees and scrub. Down by the river George has made a long
                                    coffee nursery and a large vegetable garden but both coffee and vegetable seedlings
                                    are too small to be of use.

                                    George has spared all the trees that will make good shade for the coffee later on.
                                    There are several huge wild fig trees as big as oaks but with smooth silvery-green trunks
                                    and branches and there are lots of acacia thorn trees with flat tops like Japanese sun
                                    shades. I’ve seen lovely birds in the fig trees, Louries with bright plumage and crested
                                    heads, and Blue Rollers, and in the grasslands there are widow birds with incredibly long
                                    black tail feathers.

                                    There are monkeys too and horrible but fascinating tree lizards with blue bodies
                                    and orange heads. There are so many, many things to tell you but they must wait for
                                    another time as James, the house boy, has been to say “Bafu tiari” and if I don’t go at
                                    once, the bath will be cold.

                                    I am very very happy and terribly interested in this new life so please don’t
                                    worry about me.

                                    Much love to you all,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate 29th. November 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    I’ve lots of time to write letters just now because George is busy supervising the
                                    building of the house from early morning to late afternoon – with a break for lunch of
                                    course.

                                    On our second day here our tent was moved from the house site to a small
                                    clearing further down the slope of our hill. Next to it the labourers built a ‘banda’ , which is
                                    a three sided grass hut with thatched roof – much cooler than the tent in this weather.
                                    There is also a little grass lav. so you see we have every convenience. I spend most of
                                    my day in the banda reading or writing letters. Occasionally I wander up to the house site
                                    and watch the building, but mostly I just sit.

                                    I did try exploring once. I wandered down a narrow path towards the river. I
                                    thought I might paddle and explore the river a little but I came round a bend and there,
                                    facing me, was a crocodile. At least for a moment I thought it was and my adrenaline
                                    glands got very busy indeed. But it was only an enormous monitor lizard, four or five
                                    feet long. It must have been as scared as I was because it turned and rushed off through
                                    the grass. I turned and walked hastily back to the camp and as I passed the house site I
                                    saw some boys killing a large puff adder. Now I do my walking in the evenings with
                                    George. Nothing alarming ever seems to happen when he is around.

                                    It is interesting to watch the boys making bricks for the house. They make a pile
                                    of mud which they trample with their feet until it is the right consistency. Then they fill
                                    wooden moulds with the clayey mud, and press it down well and turn out beautiful shiny,
                                    dark brown bricks which are laid out in rows and covered with grass to bake slowly in the
                                    sun.

                                    Most of the materials for the building are right here at hand. The walls will be sun
                                    dried bricks and there is a white clay which will make a good whitewash for the inside
                                    walls. The chimney and walls will be of burnt brick and tiles and George is now busy
                                    building a kiln for this purpose. Poles for the roof are being cut in the hills behind the
                                    house and every day women come along with large bundles of thatching grass on their
                                    heads. Our windows are modern steel casement ones and the doors have been made
                                    at a mission in the district. George does some of the bricklaying himself. The other
                                    bricklayer is an African from Northern Rhodesia called Pedro. It makes me perspire just
                                    to look at Pedro who wears an overcoat all day in the very hot sun.
                                    Lamek continues to please. He turns out excellent meals, chicken soup followed
                                    by roast chicken, vegetables from the Hickson-Woods garden and a steamed pudding
                                    or fruit to wind up the meal. I enjoy the chicken but George is fed up with it and longs for
                                    good red meat. The chickens are only about as large as a partridge but then they cost
                                    only sixpence each.

                                    I had my first visit to Mbeya two days ago. I put on my very best trousseau frock
                                    for the occasion- that yellow striped silk one – and wore my wedding hat. George didn’t
                                    comment, but I saw later that I was dreadfully overdressed.
                                    Mbeya at the moment is a very small settlement consisting of a bundle of small
                                    Indian shops – Dukas they call them, which stock European tinned foods and native soft
                                    goods which seem to be mainly of Japanese origin. There is a one storied Government
                                    office called the Boma and two attractive gabled houses of burnt brick which house the
                                    District Officer and his Assistant. Both these houses have lovely gardens but i saw them
                                    only from the outside as we did not call. After buying our stores George said “Lets go to the pub, I want you to meet Mrs Menzies.” Well the pub turned out to be just three or four grass rondavels on a bare
                                    plot. The proprietor, Ken Menzies, came out to welcome us. I took to him at once
                                    because he has the same bush sandy eyebrows as you have Dad. He told me that
                                    unfortunately his wife is away at the coast, and then he ushered me through the door
                                    saying “Here’s George with his bride.” then followed the Iringa welcome all over again,
                                    only more so, because the room was full of diggers from the Lupa Goldfields about fifty
                                    miles away.

                                    Champagne corks popped as I shook hands all around and George was
                                    clapped on the back. I could see he was a favourite with everyone and I tried not to be
                                    gauche and let him down. These men were all most kind and most appeared to be men
                                    of more than average education. However several were unshaven and looked as
                                    though they had slept in their clothes as I suppose they had. When they have a little luck
                                    on the diggings they come in here to Menzies pub and spend the lot. George says
                                    they bring their gold dust and small nuggets in tobacco tins or Kruschen salts jars and
                                    hand them over to Ken Menzies saying “Tell me when I’ve spent the lot.” Ken then
                                    weighs the gold and estimates its value and does exactly what the digger wants.
                                    However the Diggers get good value for their money because besides the drink
                                    they get companionship and good food and nursing if they need it. Mrs Menzies is a
                                    trained nurse and most kind and capable from what I was told. There is no doctor or
                                    hospital here so her experience as a nursing sister is invaluable.
                                    We had lunch at the Hotel and afterwards I poured tea as I was the only female
                                    present. Once the shyness had worn off I rather enjoyed myself.

                                    Now to end off I must tell you a funny story of how I found out that George likes
                                    his women to be feminine. You will remember those dashing black silk pyjamas Aunt
                                    Mary gave me, with flowered “happy coat” to match. Well last night I thought I’d give
                                    George a treat and when the boy called me for my bath I left George in the ‘banda’
                                    reading the London Times. After my bath I put on my Japanese pyjamas and coat,
                                    peered into the shaving mirror which hangs from the tent pole and brushed my hair until it
                                    shone. I must confess that with my fringe and shingled hair I thought I made quite a
                                    glamourous Japanese girl. I walked coyly across to the ‘banda’. Alas no compliment.
                                    George just glanced up from the Times and went on reading.
                                    He was away rather a long time when it came to his turn to bath. I glanced up
                                    when he came back and had a slight concussion. George, if you please, was arrayed in
                                    my very best pale yellow satin nightie. The one with the lace and ribbon sash and little
                                    bows on the shoulder. I knew exactly what he meant to convey. I was not to wear the
                                    trousers in the family. I seethed inwardly, but pretending not to notice, I said calmly “shall
                                    I call for food?” In this garb George sat down to dinner and it says a great deal for African
                                    phlegm that the boy did not drop the dishes.

                                    We conversed politely about this and that, and then, as usual, George went off
                                    to bed. I appeared to be engrossed in my book and did not stir. When I went to the
                                    tent some time later George lay fast asleep still in my nightie, though all I could see of it
                                    was the little ribbon bows looking farcically out of place on his broad shoulders.
                                    This morning neither of us mentioned the incident, George was up and dressed
                                    by the time I woke up but I have been smiling all day to think what a ridiculous picture
                                    we made at dinner. So farewell to pyjamas and hey for ribbons and bows.

                                    Your loving
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. Mbeya. 8th December 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    A mere shadow of her former buxom self lifts a languid pen to write to you. I’m
                                    convalescing after my first and I hope my last attack of malaria. It was a beastly
                                    experience but all is now well and I am eating like a horse and will soon regain my
                                    bounce.

                                    I took ill on the evening of the day I wrote my last letter to you. It started with a
                                    splitting headache and fits of shivering. The symptoms were all too familiar to George
                                    who got me into bed and filled me up with quinine. He then piled on all the available
                                    blankets and packed me in hot water bottles. I thought I’d explode and said so and
                                    George said just to lie still and I’d soon break into a good sweat. However nothing of the
                                    kind happened and next day my temperature was 105 degrees. Instead of feeling
                                    miserable as I had done at the onset, I now felt very merry and most chatty. George
                                    now tells me I sang the most bawdy songs but I hardly think it likely. Do you?
                                    You cannot imagine how tenderly George nursed me, not only that day but
                                    throughout the whole eight days I was ill. As we do not employ any African house
                                    women, and there are no white women in the neighbourhood at present to whom we
                                    could appeal for help, George had to do everything for me. It was unbearably hot in the
                                    tent so George decided to move me across to the Hickson-Woods vacant house. They
                                    have not yet returned from the coast.

                                    George decided I was too weak to make the trip in the car so he sent a
                                    messenger over to the Woods’ house for their Machila. A Machila is a canopied canvas
                                    hammock slung from a bamboo pole and carried by four bearers. The Machila duly
                                    arrived and I attempted to walk to it, clinging to George’s arm, but collapsed in a faint so
                                    the trip was postponed to the next morning when I felt rather better. Being carried by
                                    Machila is quite pleasant but I was in no shape to enjoy anything and got thankfully into
                                    bed in the Hickson-Woods large, cool and rather dark bedroom. My condition did not
                                    improve and George decided to send a runner for the Government Doctor at Tukuyu
                                    about 60 miles away. Two days later Dr Theis arrived by car and gave me two
                                    injections of quinine which reduced the fever. However I still felt very weak and had to
                                    spend a further four days in bed.

                                    We have now decided to stay on here until the Hickson-Woods return by which
                                    time our own house should be ready. George goes off each morning and does not
                                    return until late afternoon. However don’t think “poor Eleanor” because I am very
                                    comfortable here and there are lots of books to read and the days seem to pass very
                                    quickly.

                                    The Hickson-Wood’s house was built by Major Jones and I believe the one on
                                    his shamba is just like it. It is a square red brick building with a wide verandah all around
                                    and, rather astonishingly, a conical thatched roof. There is a beautiful view from the front
                                    of the house and a nice flower garden. The coffee shamba is lower down on the hill.
                                    Mrs Wood’s first husband, George’s friend Vi Lumb, is buried in the flower
                                    garden. He died of blackwater fever about five years ago. I’m told that before her
                                    second marriage Kath lived here alone with her little daughter, Maureen, and ran the farm
                                    entirely on her own. She must be quite a person. I bet she didn’t go and get malaria
                                    within a few weeks of her marriage.

                                    The native tribe around here are called Wasafwa. They are pretty primitive but
                                    seem amiable people. Most of the men, when they start work, wear nothing but some
                                    kind of sheet of unbleached calico wrapped round their waists and hanging to mid calf. As soon as they have drawn their wages they go off to a duka and buy a pair of khaki
                                    shorts for five or six shillings. Their women folk wear very short beaded skirts. I think the
                                    base is goat skin but have never got close enough for a good look. They are very shy.
                                    I hear from George that they have started on the roof of our house but I have not
                                    seen it myself since the day I was carried here by Machila. My letters by the way go to
                                    the Post Office by runner. George’s farm labourers take it in turn to act in this capacity.
                                    The mail bag is given to them on Friday afternoon and by Saturday evening they are
                                    back with our very welcome mail.

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mbeya 23rd December 1930

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    George drove to Mbeya for stores last week and met Col. Sherwood-Kelly VC.
                                    who has been sent by the Government to Mbeya as Game Ranger. His job will be to
                                    protect native crops from raiding elephants and hippo etc., and to protect game from
                                    poachers. He has had no training for this so he has asked George to go with him on his
                                    first elephant safari to show him the ropes.

                                    George likes Col. Kelly and was quite willing to go on safari but not willing to
                                    leave me alone on the farm as I am still rather shaky after malaria. So it was arranged that
                                    I should go to Mbeya and stay with Mrs Harmer, the wife of the newly appointed Lands
                                    and Mines Officer, whose husband was away on safari.

                                    So here I am in Mbeya staying in the Harmers temporary wattle and daub
                                    house. Unfortunately I had a relapse of the malaria and stayed in bed for three days with
                                    a temperature. Poor Mrs Harmer had her hands full because in the room next to mine
                                    she was nursing a digger with blackwater fever. I could hear his delirious babble through
                                    the thin wall – very distressing. He died poor fellow , and leaves a wife and seven
                                    children.

                                    I feel better than I have done for weeks and this afternoon I walked down to the
                                    store. There are great signs of activity and people say that Mbeya will grow rapidly now
                                    owing to the boom on the gold fields and also to the fact that a large aerodrome is to be
                                    built here. Mbeya is to be a night stop on the proposed air service between England
                                    and South Africa. I seem to be the last of the pioneers. If all these schemes come about
                                    Mbeya will become quite suburban.

                                    26th December 1930

                                    George, Col. Kelly and Mr Harmer all returned to Mbeya on Christmas Eve and
                                    it was decided that we should stay and have midday Christmas dinner with the
                                    Harmers. Col. Kelly and the Assistant District Commissioner came too and it was quite a
                                    festive occasion, We left Mbeya in the early afternoon and had our evening meal here at
                                    Hickson-Wood’s farm. I wore my wedding dress.

                                    I went across to our house in the car this morning. George usually walks across to
                                    save petrol which is very expensive here. He takes a short cut and wades through the
                                    river. The distance by road is very much longer than the short cut. The men are now
                                    thatching the roof of our cottage and it looks charming. It consists of a very large living
                                    room-dinning room with a large inglenook fireplace at one end. The bedroom is a large
                                    square room with a smaller verandah room adjoining it. There is a wide verandah in the
                                    front, from which one has a glorious view over a wide valley to the Livingstone
                                    Mountains on the horizon. Bathroom and storeroom are on the back verandah and the
                                    kitchen is some distance behind the house to minimise the risk of fire.

                                    You can imagine how much I am looking forward to moving in. We have some
                                    furniture which was made by an Indian carpenter at Iringa, refrectory dining table and
                                    chairs, some small tables and two armchairs and two cupboards and a meatsafe. Other
                                    things like bookshelves and extra cupboards we will have to make ourselves. George
                                    has also bought a portable gramophone and records which will be a boon.
                                    We also have an Irish wolfhound puppy, a skinny little chap with enormous feet
                                    who keeps me company all day whilst George is across at our farm working on the
                                    house.

                                    Lots and lots of love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate 8th Jan 1931

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Alas, I have lost my little companion. The Doctor called in here on Boxing night
                                    and ran over and killed Paddy, our pup. It was not his fault but I was very distressed
                                    about it and George has promised to try and get another pup from the same litter.
                                    The Hickson-Woods returned home on the 29th December so we decided to
                                    move across to our nearly finished house on the 1st January. Hicky Wood decided that
                                    we needed something special to mark the occasion so he went off and killed a sucking
                                    pig behind the kitchen. The piglet’s screams were terrible and I felt that I would not be
                                    able to touch any dinner. Lamek cooked and served sucking pig up in the traditional way
                                    but it was high and quite literally, it stank. Our first meal in our own home was not a
                                    success.

                                    However next day all was forgotten and I had something useful to do. George
                                    hung doors and I held the tools and I also planted rose cuttings I had brought from
                                    Mbeya and sowed several boxes with seeds.

                                    Dad asked me about the other farms in the area. I haven’t visited any but there
                                    are five besides ours. One belongs to the Lutheran Mission at Utengule, a few miles
                                    from here. The others all belong to British owners. Nearest to Mbeya, at the foot of a
                                    very high peak which gives Mbeya its name, are two farms, one belonging to a South
                                    African mining engineer named Griffiths, the other to I.G.Stewart who was an officer in the
                                    Kings African Rifles. Stewart has a young woman called Queenie living with him. We are
                                    some miles further along the range of hills and are some 23 miles from Mbeya by road.
                                    The Mchewe River divides our land from the Hickson-Woods and beyond their farm is
                                    Major Jones.

                                    All these people have been away from their farms for some time but have now
                                    returned so we will have some neighbours in future. However although the houses are
                                    not far apart as the crow flies, they are all built high in the foothills and it is impossible to
                                    connect the houses because of the rivers and gorges in between. One has to drive right
                                    down to the main road and then up again so I do not suppose we will go visiting very
                                    often as the roads are very bumpy and eroded and petrol is so expensive that we all
                                    save it for occasional trips to Mbeya.

                                    The rains are on and George has started to plant out some coffee seedlings. The
                                    rains here are strange. One can hear the rain coming as it moves like a curtain along the
                                    range of hills. It comes suddenly, pours for a little while and passes on and the sun
                                    shines again.

                                    I do like it here and I wish you could see or dear little home.

                                    Your loving,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 1st April 1931

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    Everything is now running very smoothly in our home. Lamek continues to
                                    produce palatable meals and makes wonderful bread which he bakes in a four gallon
                                    petrol tin as we have no stove yet. He puts wood coals on the brick floor of the kitchen,
                                    lays the tin lengh-wise on the coals and heaps more on top. The bread tins are then put
                                    in the petrol tin, which has one end cut away, and the open end is covered by a flat
                                    piece of tin held in place by a brick. Cakes are also backed in this make-shift oven and I
                                    have never known Lamek to have a failure yet.

                                    Lamek has a helper, known as the ‘mpishi boy’ , who does most of the hard
                                    work, cleans pots and pans and chops the firewood etc. Another of the mpishi boy’s
                                    chores is to kill the two chickens we eat each day. The chickens run wild during the day
                                    but are herded into a small chicken house at night. One of the kitchen boy’s first duties is
                                    to let the chickens out first thing in the early morning. Some time after breakfast it dawns
                                    on Lamek that he will need a chicken for lunch. he informs the kitchen boy who selects a
                                    chicken and starts to chase it in which he is enthusiastically joined by our new Irish
                                    wolfhound pup, Kelly. Together they race after the frantic fowl, over the flower beds and
                                    around the house until finally the chicken collapses from sheer exhaustion. The kitchen
                                    boy then hands it over to Lamek who murders it with the kitchen knife and then pops the
                                    corpse into boiling water so the feathers can be stripped off with ease.

                                    I pointed out in vain, that it would be far simpler if the doomed chickens were kept
                                    in the chicken house in the mornings when the others were let out and also that the correct
                                    way to pluck chickens is when they are dry. Lamek just smiled kindly and said that that
                                    may be so in Europe but that his way is the African way and none of his previous
                                    Memsahibs has complained.

                                    My houseboy, named James, is clean and capable in the house and also a
                                    good ‘dhobi’ or washboy. He takes the washing down to the river and probably
                                    pounds it with stones, but I prefer not to look. The ironing is done with a charcoal iron
                                    only we have no charcoal and he uses bits of wood from the kitchen fire but so far there
                                    has not been a mishap.

                                    It gets dark here soon after sunset and then George lights the oil lamps and we
                                    have tea and toast in front of the log fire which burns brightly in our inglenook. This is my
                                    favourite hour of the day. Later George goes for his bath. I have mine in the mornings
                                    and we have dinner at half past eight. Then we talk a bit and read a bit and sometimes
                                    play the gramophone. I expect it all sounds pretty unexciting but it doesn’t seem so to
                                    me.

                                    Very much love,
                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate 20th April 1931

                                    Dearest Family,

                                    It is still raining here and the countryside looks very lush and green, very different
                                    from the Mbeya district I first knew, when plains and hills were covered in long brown
                                    grass – very course stuff that grows shoulder high.

                                    Most of the labourers are hill men and one can see little patches of cultivation in
                                    the hills. Others live in small villages near by, each consisting of a cluster of thatched huts
                                    and a few maize fields and perhaps a patch of bananas. We do not have labour lines on
                                    the farm because our men all live within easy walking distance. Each worker has a labour
                                    card with thirty little squares on it. One of these squares is crossed off for each days work
                                    and when all thirty are marked in this way the labourer draws his pay and hies himself off
                                    to the nearest small store and blows the lot. The card system is necessary because
                                    these Africans are by no means slaves to work. They work only when they feel like it or
                                    when someone in the family requires a new garment, or when they need a few shillings
                                    to pay their annual tax. Their fields, chickens and goats provide them with the food they
                                    need but they draw rations of maize meal beans and salt. Only our headman is on a
                                    salary. His name is Thomas and he looks exactly like the statues of Julius Caesar, the
                                    same bald head and muscular neck and sardonic expression. He comes from Northern
                                    Rhodesia and is more intelligent than the locals.

                                    We still live mainly on chickens. We have a boy whose job it is to scour the
                                    countryside for reasonable fat ones. His name is Lucas and he is quite a character. He
                                    has such long horse teeth that he does not seem able to close his mouth and wears a
                                    perpetual amiable smile. He brings his chickens in beehive shaped wicker baskets
                                    which are suspended on a pole which Lucas carries on his shoulder.

                                    We buy our groceries in bulk from Mbeya, our vegetables come from our
                                    garden by the river and our butter from Kath Wood. Our fresh milk we buy from the
                                    natives. It is brought each morning by three little totos each carrying one bottle on his
                                    shaven head. Did I tell you that the local Wasafwa file their teeth to points. These kids
                                    grin at one with their little sharks teeth – quite an “all-ready-to-eat-you-with-my-dear” look.
                                    A few nights ago a message arrived from Kath Wood to say that Queenie
                                    Stewart was very ill and would George drive her across to the Doctor at Tukuyu. I
                                    wanted George to wait until morning because it was pouring with rain, and the mountain
                                    road to Tukuyu is tricky even in dry weather, but he said it is dangerous to delay with any
                                    kind of fever in Africa and he would have to start at once. So off he drove in the rain and I
                                    did not see him again until the following night.

                                    George said that it had been a nightmare trip. Queenie had a high temperature
                                    and it was lucky that Kath was able to go to attend to her. George needed all his
                                    attention on the road which was officially closed to traffic, and very slippery, and in some
                                    places badly eroded. In some places the decking of bridges had been removed and
                                    George had to get out in the rain and replace it. As he had nothing with which to fasten
                                    the decking to the runners it was a dangerous undertaking to cross the bridges especially
                                    as the rivers are now in flood and flowing strongly. However they reached Tukuyu safely
                                    and it was just as well they went because the Doctor diagnosed Queenies illness as
                                    Spirillium Tick Fever which is a very nasty illness indeed.

                                    Eleanor.

                                    Mchewe Estate. 20th May 1931

                                    Dear Family,

                                    I’m feeling fit and very happy though a bit lonely sometimes because George
                                    spends much of his time away in the hills cutting a furrow miles long to bring water to the
                                    house and to the upper part of the shamba so that he will be able to irrigate the coffee
                                    during the dry season.

                                    It will be quite an engineering feat when it is done as George only has makeshift
                                    surveying instruments. He has mounted an ordinary cheap spirit level on an old camera
                                    tripod and has tacked two gramophone needles into the spirit level to give him a line.
                                    The other day part of a bank gave way and practically buried two of George’s labourers
                                    but they were quickly rescued and no harm was done. However he will not let them
                                    work unless he is there to supervise.

                                    I keep busy so that the days pass quickly enough. I am delighted with the
                                    material you sent me for curtains and loose covers and have hired a hand sewing
                                    machine from Pedro-of-the-overcoat and am rattling away all day. The machine is an
                                    ancient German one and when I say rattle, I mean rattle. It is a most cumbersome, heavy
                                    affair of I should say, the same vintage as George Stevenson’s Rocket locomotive.
                                    Anyway it sews and I am pleased with my efforts. We made a couch ourselves out of a
                                    native bed, a mattress and some planks but all this is hidden under the chintz cover and
                                    it looks quite the genuine bought article. I have some diversions too. Small black faced
                                    monkeys sit in the trees outside our bedroom window and they are most entertaining to
                                    watch. They are very mischievous though. When I went out into the garden this morning
                                    before breakfast I found that the monkeys had pulled up all my carnations. There they
                                    lay, roots in the air and whether they will take again I don’t know.

                                    I like the monkeys but hate the big mountain baboons that come and hang
                                    around our chicken house. I am terrified that they will tear our pup into bits because he is
                                    a plucky young thing and will rush out to bark at the baboons.

                                    George usually returns for the weekends but last time he did not because he had
                                    a touch of malaria. He sent a boy down for the mail and some fresh bread. Old Lucas
                                    arrived with chickens just as the messenger was setting off with mail and bread in a
                                    haversack on his back. I thought it might be a good idea to send a chicken to George so
                                    I selected a spry young rooster which I handed to the messenger. He, however,
                                    complained that he needed both hands for climbing. I then had one of my bright ideas
                                    and, putting a layer of newspaper over the bread, I tucked the rooster into the haversack
                                    and buckled down the flap so only his head protruded.

                                    I thought no more about it until two days later when the messenger again
                                    appeared for fresh bread. He brought a rather terse note from George saying that the
                                    previous bread was uneatable as the rooster had eaten some of it and messed on the
                                    rest. Ah me!

                                    The previous weekend the Hickson-Woods, Stewarts and ourselves, went
                                    across to Tukuyu to attend a dance at the club there. the dance was very pleasant. All
                                    the men wore dinner jackets and the ladies wore long frocks. As there were about
                                    twenty men and only seven ladies we women danced every dance whilst the surplus
                                    men got into a huddle around the bar. George and I spent the night with the Agricultural
                                    Officer, Mr Eustace, and I met his fiancee, Lillian Austin from South Africa, to whom I took
                                    a great liking. She is Governess to the children of Major Masters who has a farm in the
                                    Tukuyu district.

                                    On the Sunday morning we had a look at the township. The Boma was an old German one and was once fortified as the Africans in this district are a very warlike tribe.
                                    They are fine looking people. The men wear sort of togas and bands of cloth around
                                    their heads and look like Roman Senators, but the women go naked except for a belt
                                    from which two broad straps hang down, one in front and another behind. Not a graceful
                                    garb I assure you.

                                    We also spent a pleasant hour in the Botanical Gardens, laid out during the last
                                    war by the District Commissioner, Major Wells, with German prisoner of war labour.
                                    There are beautiful lawns and beds of roses and other flowers and shady palm lined
                                    walks and banana groves. The gardens are terraced with flights of brick steps connecting
                                    the different levels and there is a large artificial pond with little islands in it. I believe Major
                                    Wells designed the lake to resemble in miniature, the Lakes of Killarney.
                                    I enjoyed the trip very much. We got home at 8 pm to find the front door locked
                                    and the kitchen boy fast asleep on my newly covered couch! I hastily retreated to the
                                    bedroom whilst George handled the situation.

                                    Eleanor.

                                    #6259
                                    TracyTracy
                                    Participant

                                      George “Mike” Rushby

                                      A short autobiography of George Gilman Rushby’s son, published in the Blackwall Bugle, Australia.

                                      Early in 2009, Ballina Shire Council Strategic and
                                      Community Services Group Manager, Steve Barnier,
                                      suggested that it would be a good idea for the Wardell
                                      and District community to put out a bi-monthly
                                      newsletter. I put my hand up to edit the publication and
                                      since then, over 50 issues of “The Blackwall Bugle”
                                      have been produced, encouraged by Ballina Shire
                                      Council who host the newsletter on their website.
                                      Because I usually write the stories that other people
                                      generously share with me, I have been asked by several
                                      community members to let them know who I am. Here is
                                      my attempt to let you know!

                                      My father, George Gilman Rushby was born in England
                                      in 1900. An Electrician, he migrated to Africa as a young
                                      man to hunt and to prospect for gold. He met Eleanor
                                      Dunbar Leslie who was a high school teacher in Cape
                                      Town. They later married in Dar es Salaam, Tanganyika.
                                      I was the second child and first son and was born in a
                                      mud hut in Tanganyika in 1933. I spent my first years on
                                      a coffee plantation. When four years old, and with
                                      parents and elder sister on a remote goldfield, I caught
                                      typhoid fever. I was seriously ill and had no access to
                                      proper medical facilities. My paternal grandmother
                                      sailed out to Africa from England on a steam ship and
                                      took me back to England for medical treatment. My
                                      sister Ann came too. Then Adolf Hitler started WWII and
                                      Ann and I were separated from our parents for 9 years.

                                      Sister Ann and I were not to see him or our mother for
                                      nine years because of the war. Dad served as a Captain in
                                      the King’s African Rifles operating in the North African
                                      desert, while our Mum managed the coffee plantation at
                                      home in Tanganyika.

                                      Ann and I lived with our Grandmother and went to
                                      school in Nottingham England. In 1946 the family was
                                      reunited. We lived in Mbeya in Southern Tanganyika
                                      where my father was then the District Manager of the
                                      National Parks and Wildlife Authority. There was no
                                      high school in Tanganyika so I had to go to school in
                                      Nairobi, Kenya. It took five days travelling each way by
                                      train and bus including two days on a steamer crossing
                                      Lake Victoria.

                                      However, the school year was only two terms with long
                                      holidays in between.

                                      When I was seventeen, I left high school. There was
                                      then no university in East Africa. There was no work
                                      around as Tanganyika was about to become
                                      independent of the British Empire and become
                                      Tanzania. Consequently jobs were reserved for
                                      Africans.

                                      A war had broken out in Korea. I took a day off from
                                      high school and visited the British Army headquarters
                                      in Nairobi. I signed up for military service intending to
                                      go to Korea. The army flew me to England. During
                                      Army basic training I was nicknamed ‘Mike’ and have
                                      been called Mike ever since. I never got to Korea!
                                      After my basic training I volunteered for the Parachute
                                      Regiment and the army sent me to Egypt where the
                                      Suez Canal was under threat. I carried out parachute
                                      operations in the Sinai Desert and in Cyprus and
                                      Jordan. I was then selected for officer training and was
                                      sent to England to the Eaton Hall Officer Cadet School
                                      in Cheshire. Whilst in Cheshire, I met my future wife
                                      Jeanette. I graduated as a Second Lieutenant in the
                                      Royal Lincolnshire Regiment and was posted to West
                                      Berlin, which was then one hundred miles behind the
                                      Iron Curtain. My duties included patrolling the
                                      demarcation line that separated the allies from the
                                      Russian forces. The Berlin Wall was yet to be built. I
                                      also did occasional duty as guard commander of the
                                      guard at Spandau Prison where Adolf Hitler’s deputy
                                      Rudolf Hess was the only prisoner.

                                      From Berlin, my Regiment was sent to Malaya to
                                      undertake deep jungle operations against communist
                                      terrorists that were attempting to overthrow the
                                      Malayan Government. I was then a Lieutenant in
                                      command of a platoon of about 40 men which would go
                                      into the jungle for three weeks to a month with only air
                                      re-supply to keep us going. On completion of my jungle
                                      service, I returned to England and married Jeanette. I
                                      had to stand up throughout the church wedding
                                      ceremony because I had damaged my right knee in a
                                      competitive cross-country motorcycle race and wore a
                                      splint and restrictive bandage for the occasion!
                                      At this point I took a career change and transferred
                                      from the infantry to the Royal Military Police. I was in
                                      charge of the security of British, French and American
                                      troops using the autobahn link from West Germany to
                                      the isolated Berlin. Whilst in Germany and Austria I
                                      took up snow skiing as a sport.

                                      Jeanette and I seemed to attract unusual little
                                      adventures along the way — each adventure trivial in
                                      itself but adding up to give us a ‘different’ path through
                                      life. Having climbed Mount Snowdon up the ‘easy way’
                                      we were witness to a serious climbing accident where a
                                      member of the staff of a Cunard Shipping Line
                                      expedition fell and suffered serious injury. It was
                                      Sunday a long time ago. The funicular railway was
                                      closed. There was no telephone. So I ran all the way
                                      down Mount Snowdon to raise the alarm.

                                      On a road trip from Verden in Germany to Berlin with
                                      our old Opel Kapitan motor car stacked to the roof with
                                      all our worldly possessions, we broke down on the ice and snow covered autobahn. We still had a hundred kilometres to go.

                                      A motorcycle patrolman flagged down a B-Double
                                      tanker. He hooked us to the tanker with a very short tow
                                      cable and off we went. The truck driver couldn’t see us
                                      because we were too close and his truck threw up a
                                      constant deluge of ice and snow so we couldn’t see
                                      anyway. We survived the hundred kilometre ‘sleigh
                                      ride!’

                                      I then went back to the other side of the world where I
                                      carried out military police duties in Singapore and
                                      Malaya for three years. I took up scuba diving and
                                      loved the ocean. Jeanette and I, with our two little
                                      daughters, took a holiday to South Africa to see my
                                      parents. We sailed on a ship of the Holland-Afrika Line.
                                      It broke down for four days and drifted uncontrollably
                                      in dangerous waters off the Skeleton Coast of Namibia
                                      until the crew could get the ship’s motor running again.
                                      Then, in Cape Town, we were walking the beach near
                                      Hermanus with my youngest brother and my parents,
                                      when we found the dead body of a man who had thrown
                                      himself off a cliff. The police came and secured the site.
                                      Back with the army, I was promoted to Major and
                                      appointed Provost Marshal of the ACE Mobile Force
                                      (Allied Command Europe) with dual headquarters in
                                      Salisbury, England and Heidelberg, Germany. The cold
                                      war was at its height and I was on operations in Greece,
                                      Denmark and Norway including the Arctic. I had
                                      Norwegian, Danish, Italian and American troops in my
                                      unit and I was then also the Winter Warfare Instructor
                                      for the British contingent to the Allied Command
                                      Europe Mobile Force that operated north of the Arctic
                                      Circle.

                                      The reason for being in the Arctic Circle? From there
                                      our special forces could look down into northern
                                      Russia.

                                      I was not seeing much of my two young daughters. A
                                      desk job was looming my way and I decided to leave
                                      the army and migrate to Australia. Why Australia?
                                      Well, I didn’t want to go back to Africa, which
                                      seemed politically unstable and the people I most
                                      liked working with in the army, were the Australian
                                      troops I had met in Malaya.

                                      I migrated to Brisbane, Australia in 1970 and started
                                      working for Woolworths. After management training,
                                      I worked at Garden City and Brookside then became
                                      the manager in turn of Woolworths stores at
                                      Paddington, George Street and Redcliff. I was also the
                                      first Director of FAUI Queensland (The Federation of
                                      Underwater Diving Instructors) and spent my spare
                                      time on the Great Barrier Reef. After 8 years with
                                      Woollies, I opted for a sea change.

                                      I moved with my family to Evans Head where I
                                      converted a convenience store into a mini
                                      supermarket. When IGA moved into town, I decided
                                      to take up beef cattle farming and bought a cattle
                                      property at Collins Creek Kyogle in 1990. I loved
                                      everything about the farm — the Charolais cattle, my
                                      horses, my kelpie dogs, the open air, fresh water
                                      creek, the freedom, the lifestyle. I also became a
                                      volunteer fire fighter with the Green Pigeon Brigade.
                                      In 2004 I sold our farm and moved to Wardell.
                                      My wife Jeanette and I have been married for 60 years
                                      and are now retired. We have two lovely married
                                      daughters and three fine grandchildren. We live in the
                                      greatest part of the world where we have been warmly
                                      welcomed by the Wardell community and by the
                                      Wardell Brigade of the Rural Fire Service. We are
                                      very happy here.

                                      Mike Rushby

                                      A short article sent to Jacksdale in England from Mike Rushby in Australia:

                                      Rushby Family

                                    Viewing 20 results - 121 through 140 (of 523 total)